.0 c> \ *'^*\$ /'% C> V ^ ' , X "* ^ ^A x° °* / .0" , <#■ l "" ^ %$ ^ '% OCT ^ "o " ■ ■0" i v\^' 0© V \ * " / c- ^ -%. ,0o OC ^ ,0 r 5 -A^i.iAt., HAMLET WITH INTRODUCTION, NOTES, AND QUESTIONS FOR REVIEW Adapted from Marshall and Wood's "Oxford and Cambridge Edition" BY F. A. PURCELL, D.D. RECTOR, CATHEDRAL COLLEGE, CHICAGO AND L. M. SOMERS, M.A. PROFESSOR OF ENGLISH, CATHEDRAL COLLEGE SCOTT, FORESMAN AND COMPANY CHICAGO NEW YORK ,* D A Copyright 1916 By F. A. Purcell and L. M. Somers J(/t ' ( I9IS ©CU431833 ^Wj-x I PREFACE This series of Shakespeare's plays, which includes The Merchant of Venice, Julius Ccesar, Macbeth, and Hamlet, is based mainly on the Oxford and Cambridge editions of Spils- bury, and Marshall and "Wood. The present Editors have found it expedient to eliminate certain passages in the text, as well as to make some changes of matter and form in the editorial work, deemed necessary for American schools. The Introduction con- tains a Biographical Sketch of Shakespeare, a short account of the History of the Drama, brief references to the Sources of the Play, to the Characters, to Versification, to the Grammar of Shakespeare, etc. The annotated words are printed in italic type and the notes and word equivalents are given in the margin in juxtaposition with the text for the convenience of the student. The Glossary and many of the Notes have been rewritten, con- densed, or amplified, as the case required, and the Classical and Biblical Allusions have been included in the Notes and Glossary. An abstract of the play has been supplied in Hamlet and in The Merchant of Venice. Some unimportant and apocryphal matter has been omitted. The section on Shakespearean Grammar will be found convenient for those who may have difficulty in classi- fying many Shakespearean expressions, and the Questions for Review will be of advantage to both teacher and pupil, by saving time for the one, and by assigning specific work to the other. CONTENTS PAGE Preface 3 Introduction. I. Narrative of Shakespeare 's Life 7 II. Shakespeare 's Beligion 10 III. Shakespeare 's Learning 14 IV. The Drama 17 V. The Eepresentation of the Play in Shakespeare 's Time 19 VI. The Construction of the Drama 21 VII. Date of Composition of Samlet 21 VIII. Source of the Play 22 IX. Characteristics of the Play 23 X. Character Interpretation 24 XI. Characters of the Play 26 XII. Abstract of the Play 69 XIII. Duration of the Play 71 Text 73 Notes 205 Grammatical Notes 234 Versification 241 Questions for Keview 242 Glossary 265 INTRODUCTION I. NARRATIVE OF SHAKESPEARE'S LIFE William Shakespeare, the greatest of English dramatic poets, was born at Stratford-on-Avon, Warwickshire, England, on April 23, 1564. His father, John Shakespeare, was of the yeoman class. He had been a successful Warwickshire farmer, but he adopted the trade of glover on his removal to Stratford in 1553. There he soon became an important factor in municipal affairs, and by ability and industry he rapidly rose from one position of trust to another, until finally, in 1568, he became high bailiff or mayor of the town. Shakespeare 's mother, Mary Arden, was of an old Warwickshire family, and though she inherited "lands and houses" she had no education. John and Mary Shakespeare had eight children — four sons and four daughters. William, the third child, was the eldest son. Of his infancy and boyhood we know practically nothing. It is probable, however, that at the age of seven he entered the grammar school of Stratford, where he learned the rudiments of Latin, English grammar, writing, arithmetic, and probably a little Greek. His years at school were not many, for the declining fortunes of his father compelled the boy to seek employment when he was but thirteen years of age. After this we hear little or nothing about him until the time of his marriage, which probably took place in December, 1582. His wife, Ann Hathaway, of whom the boy-poet admiringly wrote Ann Hathaway, she hath a way To charm all hearts, Ann Hathaway, does not seem to have long exerted that charm over her young husband. At the time of their union he was little more than 7 8 HAMLET eighteen, while she had attained the more mature age of twenty- six. This marriage, like most marriages of its kind, did not prove a happy one. If a small amount of reliable tradition can be winnowed from the chaff of fiction with which the memory of Shakespeare's boyhood days at Stratford is surrounded, we may give credence to the tales regarding his youthful follies and escapades. Of the latter but one may be mentioned as having a direct bearing upon his whole career. "We are told that he took part in poach- ing expeditions — a prohibited practice of the time— during one of which he was caught stealing deer from the estate of the eccentric Sir Thomas Lucy of Charlecote. The punishment for this offense in those days was a fine and imprisonment. Sir Thomas, being Justice of the Peace for that district, acted as "judge, jury, and executioner" in the case of the young Shakespeare, who bitterly resented the punishment meted out to him. In revenge, it is said, he wrote the scurrilous lampoon beginning A parliament member, a justice of peace, At home a poor scarecrow, etc. and posted it on the gate to Charlecote Manor. This naturally aroused Sir Thomas to further reprisals, and Shakespeare, to escape his vengeance, fled to London in 1585. Verification of the poaching tradition may be found in 2 Henry TV and in The Merry Wives of Windsor, where Lucy is carica- tured as "Justice Shallow." The three luces or pikes, in the Lucy coat-of-arms, apparently suggested the "dozen white luces" in The Merry Wives of Windsor, and the many allusions to poaching found in the context are none the less significant. Before the poet's departure for London, three children were born to him — Susanna, the eldest, in May, 1583, and Hamnet and Judith, twins, in February, 1585. On his flight, the immediate support of these children is supposed to have devolved upon his INTRODUCTION mother-in-law, Mrs. Hathaway, of Shottery, then a widow in affluent circumstances. Tradition says that Shakespeare's first employment in Lon- don was holding horses at theater doors, and doing odd jobs for theater-goers. Be this as it may, we soon find him employed as prompter's attendant, whose duty it was to notify the actors when it was their turn to appear upon the stage, etc., and later we find him filling minor parts in the plays. Gradually he worked his way into more important positions. During these first few years, he must have devoted considerable time to reading, as a preparation for the wonderful works he was afterwards to produce. He recast and revised many old plays, began the production of original dramas, and acted some of the leading roles in his own plays. In company with "William Kempe and Richard Burbage he made a successful appearance before Queen Elizabeth at Greenwich Palace in 1594. He acted before her again at Whitehall in 1596, at Richmond and White- hall in 1600, four times at Whitehall in 1601-02, and at Rich- mond Palace in 1603, a month before her death. In 1603 he fell under the favorable notice of King James I., who granted him and his company a license to play in London and the sur- rounding provinces. Later he appeared at court on several occa- sions, and in 1604 he marched in the royal train when James made his formal passage from the tower to Westminster. On this occasion he and each of his companions received four and one-half yards of scarlet silk, the usual dress allowance of court actors in those days. It is quite evident that as an actor Shake- speare was much more successful, financially, than as a play- wright. Whatever may have been Shakespeare's youthful follies and extravagances, in later life he became not only a great poet, but he also developed the instincts of a shrewd business man. Through his acting and the sale of his plays he accumulated a respectable fortune, with part of which he purchased some 10 HAMLET valuable property in London and elsewhere. After an absence of eleven years he returned to Stratford in 1596, to bury hia only son, Hamnet.* At Stratford Shakespeare invested considerable money in houses and lands, and obtained from the government the dis- tinction of a coat-of-arms, but he did not take up his residence there until 1616. In this year he abandoned dramatic composi- tion and began to enjoy, in his beautiful home at Stratford, a well deserved and much needed rest. At the beginning of this year, however, his health began to fail rapidly, and by April his end was near. The actual cause of his death is unknown, but it is generally admitted that overwork, and a not too submissive obedience to the laws of health, hastened an all too early dissolution. He died on the fifty-second anniver- sary of his birth, April 23, 1616, and was buried inside the chancel of Stratford church. On his tomb was inscribed the following epitaph : Good frend for Jesus' sake forbeare To digg the dust eucloased heare, Blese be ye man yt spares thes stones, And curst be he yt moves my bones. n. Shakespeare's religion The question of Shakespeare's religion has been long, and sometimes furiously, debated. Many eminent writers incline to the belief that he was a Roman Catholic, while many others, equally eminent, maintain that he was a Protestant. At the risk of being considered partisan the editors have decided to insert the following rather lengthy extract from the pen of the dis- tinguished litterateur and scientist, James J. Walsh, M.D., L.H J). * The direct line of Shakespeare's family became extinct a little over fifty years after the poet's death. Judith married Thomas Quiney, of Stratford. The off- spring of this marriage — three boys — died before reaching the age of manhood. Susanna married Dr. Hall, and of their union was born Elizabeth, the only granddaughter of the poet. Elizabeth married Thomas Nash, who died leaving no children. She then married John Barnard, who was afterwards knighted by Charles II. Lady Barnard died childless in 1669, and thus the immediate family of Shakespeare became extinct. INTBODUCTION H This extract they hope will be instructive to many Catholics, and interesting, at least, to some who are not Catholics; There is no doubt that Shakespeare 's mother lived and died a Catholic. Her name was Mary Arden, and many of the Ardens continued to be staunch Catholics even during the dangers of Elizabeth's reign. Indeed, one of the prominent members of the family suffered death for the faith. Shakespeare's mother, moreover, made a will in which there is a mention of the Blessed Virgin, a custom that had gone out of vogue in England at this time except among Catholics. Shakespeare's father, too, is on the list of Stratford recusants who were summoned by the court for not attending the Anglican service on Sundays. Shake- speare's immediate surroundings, likewise, were distinctly Catholic, for the spirit of the old religion had not died as yet in England. Indeed, it was very much alive in the central portion of the country. It is sometimes said, however, that there can be no question of Shakespeare 's being a Catholic, for he was married, baptized, and buried in the Anglican Church. But these facts, it must be remembered, have in themselves no such significance as they would possess at the present time. There was no way of having the birth of a child properly registered then in England except by having it baptized in the church by law established. Obse- quies also had to be observed according to the Anglican rite, for the only cemetery was close to the parish church. As for Shakespeare's marriage, in recent years the interesting sugges- tion has been made that the real reason for the circumstances attending the ceremony, which are supposed to carry a hint of scandal with them, is because he was originally married by a Catholic priest. As it was then very perilous for a priest to show himself in public or to perform any official church service, the marriage was, of course, performed secretly. Anne Hath- away 's family, moreover, was Catholic by tradition, and about the time of the marriage it is known that a priest, not entirely without the knowledge of the local authorities, used to say Mass privately, in the loft of one of the houses at Shottery. But if Shakespeare was a Catholic should not his plays show it? Unquestionably. And I maintain they do. Commentators have pointed out, for instance, that Shakespeare in Romeo and Juliet follows Arthur Brooke's Tragical History of Borneo and 12 HAMLET Juliet very closely. He has, however, changed the whole of the play's attitude toward the Catholic Church. Confession instead of being a source of sin actually protects the young people from their own passion in the most difficult circumstances, and almost succeeds in rescuing them from an unfortunate complication. Instead of being "superstitious," Friar Lawrence is pictured as a dear old man interested in his plants and what they can do for mankind, but interested still more in human souls, trying to care for them and quite willing to do everything that he can, even risking the displeasure of two noble houses rather than have the young people commit sin. Friar Lawrence is repre- sented in general as one to whom Romeo and Juliet would nat- urally turn in their difficulty. But King John, it is maintained, represents an altogether different attitude toward the Church. In that play they assert there are passages which make it very clear that Shakespeare shares the general feeling of the men of England in his time. King John protests, for example : That no Italian priest Shall tithe or toll in our dominions. But as we, under heaven, are supreme head, So under Him that great supremacy, Where we do reign, we will alone uphold, "Without the assistance of a mortal hand: So tell the Pope, all reverence set apart To him and his usurp 'd authority. In this play, too, there are some bitter comments on monks which would seem to prove that Shakespeare shared the opinions of many of his contemporaries regarding monasticism. But let us see : The Troublesome Reign of King John, from which Shakespeare made his play, was probably written in the year of the Spanish Armada when English national feeling ran very high and there was bitter antagonism against Catholicism as the religion of England's greatest enemies. The dramatist — we are not quite sure who it was— shrewdly took advantage of this political situation in order to gain favor for his play. He tickled the ears of the groundlings and attracted popular attention by stimulating the prejudice of his audience. Shakespeare modified all this to a very marked extent when he rewrote the play seven years later, though it can be seen that he used many of the words of the original version and was evidently following it very INTRODUCTION 13 closely. But for some good reason he was manifestly minimizing all the anti-Catholic bias in it though letting stand whatever sentiments were suitable for such characters as King John and his entourage. In the matter of monks and nuns and their treat- ment in the original version of King John, Shakespeare has been even more drastic in the changes that he made. But the best evidence of Shakespeare 's attitude toward the Anglican Church is to be found in King Henry VIII., one of the poet's greatest plays and the last he wrote. Some of the Wolsey speeches in it are the finest examples of English that were ever penned. It is conceded by all the critics to be the ripest fruit of his mature years. Therefore, if a play can be considered the expression of Shakespeare's settled opinion, that play is Henry VIII. Now it so happens that the subject of Henry VIII. is exactly the story of how the change of religion came about in England. But it is sometimes urged that the fifth act, with its culmination in the birth of Elizabeth, and the high prospects for England and the rejoicings which this occasions, indicates that the writer considered that the marriage of King Henry to Anne Boleyn and the birth of a daughter by that union marked a great epoch in English history and, above all, that the steps that led to this happy termination, though dramatically blame- worthy, must be condoned owing to their happy consequences. It is well known, however, that the fifth act by every test known to Shakespearean commentators was not written by Shakespeare at all, but by Fletcher. Our knowledge of Shakespeare's relations with people in London would indicate that a great many of his friends and intimates were Catholics. It is possible that the Burbages, the actors with whom he was so closely joined during most of his dramatic career, belonged to the Warwickshire Catholic family of that name. One of Shakespeare's dearest friends, the Earl of Southampton, who was his patron in early years, and his sup- porter when he bought the Blackfriars theater, was closely allied to a Catholic family and, as Simpson has pointed out, was cradled in Catholic surroundings. The conversion of Ben Jonson about the middle of the last decade of the sixteenth Century showed how easily men might be Catholics in London at this time. Ben Jonson was in the Marshalsea prison on a charge of murder in 1594 and found 14 HAMLET himself surrounded by priests who were charged with treason because of their refusal to take the oath of supremacy. By asso- ciating with them Jonson became a Catholic and when released from prison married a Catholic wife. His child was baptized Mary, and Shakespeare was chosen as her sponsor. This choice of a godfather seems to indicate that Shakespeare was a Catholic at this time for, in his ardor as a new convert, Ben Jonson would scarcely have selected an Anglican for that office. One more proof of Shakespeare's Catholicism in conclusion: About the close of the seventeenth century Archdeacon Davies, who was a local historian and antiquarian in the neighboring county of Staffordshire, but who was well acquainted with Strat- ford and its history, and who could easily have had very definite sources of information denied to us, declared that Shakespeare ' ' dyed a papist. ' ' It would have been perfectly possible, it must be remembered, for Archdeacon Davies to have spoken with people who knew Shakespeare during the years that the poet spent in Stratford at the end of his life. After this review of the evidence I can not but conclude that Shakespeare not only ' ' dyed a papist, ' ' but also lived as one. Leaving those, to whom these lines may be of interest, to make their own deductions, the editors accept the conclusions of the distinguished Jesuit, Herbert Thurston, who, in discussing this point in the Catholic Encyclopedia, maintains that there is no real ground for the belief that Shakespeare either lived or died a Catholic. Thurston concludes his able study of this question by stating, ' ' The point must remain forever uncertain. ' ' m. Shakespeare's learning Of Shakespeare 's learning it may be said that though classical quotations and allusions are numerous throughout his works, Ben Jonson credits him with "small Latin and less Greek." "His quotations from Latin literature are such as a schoolboy might make from Virgil, Ovid, and the other authors he had studied; and his allusions to classical history and mythology are mostly from the same sources, or from the familiar stock in English books of the period." (Rolfe.) In comparing Shake- INTEODTJCTION 15 speare with the dramatists of his time, Jasper Mayne, writing in 1637, mentions him as one of those who did his work "without Latin helps"; and Mayne 's contemporary, Ramsey, in compli- menting Ben Jonson on his knowledge of the classical languages, says that he (Jonson) could command That which your Shakespeare could scarce understand. Yet we are told that Shakespeare's work is "Art without art, unparalleled as yet," and though he borrowed nothing from Latin or Greek, his Julius Caesar ravished the audience, When some new day they would not brook a line Of tedious (though well labour 'd) Catiline, and Jonson 's "Sejanus too was irksome." In Fuller's Worthies we find the following reference to Shakespeare: "He was an eminent instance of the truth of that rule, Poeta non fit, sed nascitur — one is not made but born a poet. Indeed his learning was very little . . . nature itself was all the art which was used on him." And he speaks of the wit combats between him and Ben Johnson, "which two I behold like a Spanish great gal- leon and an English man-of-war. Master Jonson (like the former) was built far higher in learning; solid but slow in his performances : Shakespeare, like the English man-of-war, lesser in bulk and lighter in sailing, could turn with all tides, tack about, and take advantage of all winds, by the quickness of his wit and invention." Dry den in his Essay on Dramatic Poesy (1668), says: "Those who accuse him to have wanted learning, give him the greater commendation ; he needed not the spectacles of books to read nature ; he looked inwards and found her there : ' ' and in the same author's prologue to Julius Ccesar we find, So in this Caesar which today we see, Tully ne 'er spoke as he makes Antony. Those then that tax his learning are to blame; He knew the thing, but did not know the name. Great Jonson did that ignorance adore, And tho' he envied much, admired him more. 16 HAMLET The material for his historical plays he obtained from Holinshed and Plutarch, and in the use of these rather unre- liable authorities he makes many unscholarly mistakes. During his mature years and in the time of his prosperity, he brought out his best works. Some writers credit him with the authorship of forty-three plays of a dramatic character. Seven of these are considered spurious. Thirty-three known to be his are divided as follows : The Taming of the Shrew The Merchant of Venice All's Well that Ends Well Much Ado About Nothing Measure for Measure The Comedy of Errors Twelfth Night Midsummer-Night 's Dream As You Like It Cymbeline Two Gentlemen of Verona The Merry Wives of Windsor Love 's Labor 's Lost The Winter's Tale The Tempest Timon of Athens GPericles SUulius Caesar f Antony and Cleopatra Coriolanus Hamlet Troilus and Cressida Romeo and Juliet Othello King Lear Macbeth King John King Richard the Second 1 and 2 King Henry the Fourth King Henry the Fifth 1, 2, 3 King Henry the Sixth Richard the Third Henry the Eighth Italian Origin } Classical (from Plautus) j-Mediaeval Sources Legendary Spanish Origin English Origin French Origin } Origin Unknown Comedies Classical Origin .(Plutarch's Lives, by North) j-Mediaeval Origin } Italian Origin 1 Origin — Legendary j History of Britain^ "Tragedies -Origin — Holinshed & Hall Chronicle Plays INTRODUCTION 17 Besides these he wrote one hundred and fifty-four Sonnets and some Narrative Poems. IV. THE DKAMA A lengthy discussion of the drama cannot be conveniently introduced into a text of this kind ; therefore, the chief heads only will be touched upon. Drama is a Greek term signifying action,""^ and in its application it comprehends all forms of literature proper for presentation on the stage. In the drama, actors usually tell a story by means of word and action. This story may be tragic or comic; — tragic when the serious phases of life are discussed, comic when life's follies and foibles are depicted. Other phases of the drama which do not, strictly speaking, come under the heading tragedy or comedy, are the Greek Satyrs, the Morality Plays of the Middle Ages, the Pastoral Plays of the Renaissance, and the Melodramas still in vogue. Although the drama was well established in the remote ages in India and China, the earliest examples of pure dramatic art are to be found in Greece. From the sacred songs and choruses in honor of the god Dionysus, the Greeks in time evolved a form of drama, the chief features of which, even in its highest stages of development, were lyric or choral. To Aeschylus, Sophocles, Euripides, and Aristophanes, in the fifth century, and to Menander at a later period, the Greek drama owes its greatness and its influence in ancient and in modern dramatic literature. The Roman drama, as it has come down to us in the works of Terence, Plautus, and Seneca, is but a slightly modified form of Menander, and shows some traces of the influence of Aeschylus and other dramatists of his time. This modification, in the comedies of Plautus at least, was not for the betterment of the drama; on the contrary, it was a concession to the depraved taste of his Roman audience. Unfortunately, Plautus' travesties of the old Greek masters later served as models for the dramatic writers of the Renaissance, and his influence is felt even to the 18 HAMLET present day. Modern tragedy, generally speaking, is a direct offspring of the works of Seneca. Toward the close of the Roman Empire, the theaters became the scenes of the most degraded exhibitions of indecency and debauchery. Christianity attacked these indecencies and drove the mimes from their haunts of infamy into the streets and byways of Rome and its environs. These mimes practiced their mimicry in the villages and cross- roads, and became the models for the strolling players of the middle ages. Christianity, however, recognized the necessity of the drama as a humanizing influence, and though years elapsed before its restoration as drama proper, the leaders of the new religion set about the substitution of wholesome Christian plays for the Roman indecencies to which they had recently given the death blow. The Scriptures and the liturgy of the church were rich stores from which were drawn the materials for the Mystery, the Morality, and the Miracle Plays. After a time these exhibi- tions passed from the control of churchmen into the hands of the Guilds. Under the management of the Guilds these plays soon lost their religious aspect, and before the end of the fifteenth century they had been completely divorced from church in- fluence, and were ready to be destroyed or absorbed by the spirit of the New Learning. This destruction or absorption, however, was not accomplished without a struggle. The leaders of the Renaissance advocated the complete dominance of classic in- fluence in the reconstruction of the drama, while the Medieval- ists strenuously advocated the perpetuation of the Mystery, Morality, and Miracle Plays. Of this travail, however, was born the modern drama. Italy, France, Germany, England, and Scandinavia contrib- uted largely to the formation of the modern drama, but prac- tically all the dramatic writers of these countries have been in- fluenced by the Greek and Roman masters. These masters have been slavishly imitated by all but a few of their pupils. This INTRODUCTION 19 is especially true in the matter of composition and technique. The observance of the unities, the harmony of rhyme, the smooth- ness of rhythm, the maintenance of the chorus, the number and character of the dramatis personam, etc., were classic restrictions, which, to a certain extent, have stultified the higher and broader aspirations of many a dramatic genius. Among those who rebelled against these restrictions, in so far as they affected the English drama, were some of the immediate predecessors of Shakespeare — Marlowe, Kyd, Green, and Lyly. These men opened the way for the sweeping innovations of Shakespeare, and for the half-hearted adoption of these innovations by Ben Jonson, who often apologized to his contemporaries for his temerity in disregarding the unities and other classic formulae. Since Shakespeare's time, or what is known as the period of the Elizabethan drama, no English dramatic literature, worthy of comparison with the work of that great master, has appeared. During the reign of James I., Massinger, Middleton, Shirley, and others wrote, but their art was only a weak imitation of their masters, Marlowe and Shakespeare. Addison, Steele, Goldsmith, "Wordsworth, Coleridge, Byron, Shelley, Tennyson, and others, have sought recognition on the dramatic stage, but with little or no success. So far America has produced nothing of a dramatic nature worthy of recognition, and judging from the dominance of the light, frivolous, vaudeville performances on the English and American stages, the drama as a popular entertain- ment has been laid to rest, and the day of its resurrection seems far distant. V. THE REPRESENTATION OF THE DRAMA IN SHAKESPEARE *S TIME The staging of the drama in Shakespeare's time was a very different matter from what it is today. The primitive theaters, or theatrical inns, were rude wooden structures, usually circular in form, with a covered stage and covered galleries, and an open 20 HAMLET pit exposed to the vicissitudes of wind and weather. These crude structures were usually located outside the city walls, and be- yond the jurisdiction of the city authorities, for, at that time, all theatrical representations were held in disfavor by the Puri- tanical leaders in church and state. The gallants of the town occupied the stage with the players, and delighted in chaffing and interrupting the actors with irrelevant puns and clownish mimicry. The middle classes occupied the galleries and often enjoyed the spontaneous sallies of wit and repartee between the gallants and the players more than they enjoyed the play itself. The "tag-rag," or what then might have been regarded as we regard our present-day "gallery gods," occupied the pit, and when not dodging the not infrequent missiles hurled from the stage, or the snow or rain from the open firmament, they could appreciate a good comedy or a real drama as well as could the more favored occupants of the reserved places. The stage had no scenery, that being first introduced by Davenant after the Restoration. There were no rise and fall of a curtain to mark the opening and close of a scene. The entrance to the stage was strewn with rushes instead of being carpeted ; the walls were hung with arras; a large board with names painted on it indi- cated where the scenes of the play being produced were laid. For tragedies the walls were hung with black tapestry; Shake- speare speaks of "Black stage for tragedies and murders fell" ("Lucrece") ; and History, addressing Comedy, says: Look, Comedy, I mark'd it not till now, The stage is hung with black, and I perceive The auditors prepar'd for tragedie. A Warning for Fair Women. Before the Restoration women's parts were acted by boys, and even among the audience no woman might appear unless masked. The union of the serious and the comic in the same play was common, and clowns were apt to thrust themselves INTRODUCTION 21 upon the stage on all occasions, much to the annoyance of Shakespeare himself. (See Hamlet, III., ii., 43.) The costume and many other stage accessories were almost entirely lacking, and the few that were used were usually inappropriate. Thus the gorgeous stage setting of the present day, which adds so much to the successful presentation of the drama, had to be sup- plied by the keen imagination of the audience; and here we get a fair appreciation of the high degree of intelligence de- manded from theater-goers of the Elizabethan period. VI. THE CONSTRUCTION OF THE DRAMA "A drama undertakes to tell a story by presenting a few episodes or situations from which the entire course of the action can be inferred. Inasmuch as these scenes are to be presented in rapid succession to an audience, they must be not only clear and easy to follow, but, to be interesting, they must also afford op- portunity for striking, significant action on the part of the char- acters. Further, inasmuch as in a drama the author has no op- portunity to tell his audience directly what he thinks of his characters, these latter must reveal their natures and purposes by their attitude toward one another, as manifested in speech or action. It is most important that every action in a drama be explained, prepared for, given a motive, by something which has already taken place, or some trait of character already indi- cated." — Robert Morss Lovett. VII. DATE OF COMPOSITION OF HAMLET On July 26, 1602, James Roberts, a printer of London, entered upon the register of the Stationers' Company,* "A booke called The Revenge of Hamlett Prince Denmarke as yt was latelie Acted by the Lord Chamberlayne his Servantes." In 1603 the First * A company incorporated in London in 1557. It had a monopoly of the registration of all publications down to the passing of the Copyright Act in 1842. 22 HAMLET Quarto, Q x , consisting of 32 pages, 2143 lines, was entered on the register of the Stationers ' Company with this title : ' ' The Tragicall Historie of Hamlet, Prince of Denmarke, by William Shakes- peare. As it hath been diverse times acted by his Highnesso servantes in- the Cittie of London ; as also in the two Universities of Cambridge and Oxford, and Elsewhere. At London printed for N. L. and John T. Trundell, 1603." This edition is un- doubtedly pirated, and may have been produced from notes taken during the representation of the play. It differs materially from the second Quarto, Q 2 , the authorized edition, which was entered upon the Stationers' Eegister in 1604 with the title: "The Tragicall Historie of Hamlet, Prince of Denmarke. By William Shakespeare. Newly imprinted and enlarged to almost as much againe as it was, according to the true and perfect coppie. ' ' This is the best of the quartos, and is supposed to be as Shakespeare had left it. From the foregoing it is evident no exact date can be assigned for the publication of Hamlet, but it is very probable the first version was written during the years 1601-2, and the second dur- ing 1603-4. Three other Quartos followed the first two, but each of these was merely a copy of the one preceding. In 1623 Hamlet appeared in the First Folio, Y t , an edition of Shakespeare's com' plete works. This version was different from and in some respects inferior to the second Quarto. The First Folio was followed by three others at various times. The present edition is a combina^ tion of Q 2 and F x . VIII. SOURCE OF THE PLAY In 1208, Saxo Grammaticus, a Danish writer, a native of Elsinore, wrote Historica Danica, a Latin history of Denmark. The Legend of Amleth or Hamlet appears in the third and fourth books, and is taken from the Icelandic Saga of Damsk Kings. Belleforest, a French writer, published at Paris in 1570, his Histories Tragiques. The fifth volume contains the legend of Amleth. In 1608, some years after the publication of INTRODUCTION 23 Hamlet, there appeared an English translation of Belief orest's Amleth known as the Hystorie of Hamblet. There may have been earlier translations but this is the only one extant. The legend, however, seems to have been well known and appears to have been embodied in previous plays. From these, Shakespeare is supposed to have gathered materials for the framework of his plot. The following brief sketch will show the points of resem- blance between the Legend of Amleth and Shakespeare's Hamlet: Two brothers, Horvendile and Fengon, are appointed by Roderick, king of Denmark, governors over two provinces of his kingdom. Horvendile wins renown as a Vi-king and, in single combat, slays Collere, king of Norway. Roderick receives a large share of the spoil, and gives Horvendile his daughter Geruth in marriage. Horvendile and Geruth have a son, Amleth. Fengon falls in love with Geruth and wins her affection. He secretly murders his brother, marries Geruth, and obtains his brother's province. Amleth suspects his uncle, and to prove the truth of his suspicions, as well as to save his own life, he feigns madness. Plots are laid to test whether the madness is real or feigned. Not being able to satisfy himself, Fengon sends Amleth to Brit- ain. With him go two servants who are intrusted with secret letters, desiring the king of Britain to slay Amleth. On the voyage Amleth secures and reads the letters, and so alters them that the servants, on their arrival in England, are hanged in his stead. Amleth returns to Denmark, where he finds his own funeral rites being celebrated. He sets fire to the castle, kills the king, reveals the reason for his feigned madness, and ascends the throne. IX. CHARACTERISTICS OF THE PLAY "To the common public Hamlet is a famous piece by a famous poet, with crime, a ghost, battle, and carnage ; and that is sufficient. To the youthful enthusiast Hamlet is a piece han- dling the mystery of the universe, and having throughout cadences, phrases, and words full of the divinest Shakespearean 24 HAMLET magic ; and that too is sufficient. To the pedant, finally, Hamlet is an occasion for airing his psychology; and what does pedant require more 1 But to the spectator who loves true and powerful drama, and can judge whether he gets it or not, Hamlet is a piece which opens, indeed, simply and admirably, and then, ' The rest is puzzle ! ' . . . Hamlet thus comes at last to be not a drama followed with perfect comprehension and profoundest emotion, which is the ideal for tragedy, but a problem soliciting interpre- tation and solution. It will never, therefore, be a piece to be seen with pure satisfaction by those who will not deceive them- selves. But such is its power and such is its fame that it will always continue to be acted, and we shall all of us continue to go and see it." — *Matthew Arnold, in the Pall Mall Gazette. X. CHARACTER INTERPRETATION" The following simple rules are intended to guide students of the play to form their own estimate of the various characters, a much more useful and interesting process than that of merely committing to memory the opinions of others : 1. In judging the character of any of the dramatis persorae take into account what is said of him by his companions. Hamlet himself will assist you to form a general estimate of almost every other character in the play. 2. In estimating a person's character by what he himself says, note attentively the circumstances under which he speaks. Most of the hints from which we may form a correct esti- mate of Hamlet's character are found in his own soliloquies. In conversation with other characters Hamlet often, pur- posely, misrepresents himself. 3. Do not interpret character by single incidents. Many details must be looked upon in the light of the general view. Polonius must not be regarded as a sage because he gives * Arnold, Matthew, born at Laleham, England, 1822 ; died in 1888. A noted English literary critic and poet. INTRODUCTION 25 wise counsel to Laertes. Compare his speeches with his actions, and it will be found that, as Goethe says, he speaks like a book, when he is prepared beforehand, and like an ass, when he utters the overflowings of his heart. 4. "Watch the development of character as time progresses. Form for yourself a general idea of what each character may have been before the period of the play, and observe the effect of circumstances and surroundings upon that char- acter. Hamlet would have presented a very different figure if he had not had a duty imposed upon him, for the perform- ance of which he was by nature unfitted. 5. Observe carefully all contrasts, Shakespeare generally adds to the interest of his characterization by contrast or by duplica- tion. Laertes and Fortinbras are both placed in strongest contrast to Hamlet. Horatio forms a contrast to almost all the other characters of the play; and Hamlet himself ex- presses the contrast between his father and his step-father. 6. Finally, read carefully, and act upon these cautions and hints by Coleridge.* "If you take only what the friends of the character say, you may be deceived, and still more so, if that which his enemies say ; nay, even the character himself sees himself through the medium of his character, and not exactly as he his. Take all together, not omitting a shrewd hint from the clown or the fool, and perhaps your impression will be right ; and you may know whether you have in fact discov- ered the poet's own idea, by all the speeches receiving light from it, and attesting its reality by reflecting it. ' ' Shakespeare "clothed the creatures of his legend with form and sentiments, as if they were people who had lived under his roof; and few real men have left such distinct characters as these fictions. ' ' — f Emerson. * Coleridge, Samuel Taylor, born at Ottery St. Mary, 1772 ; died 1834. An English poet, philosopher, and literary critic. t Emerson, Ralph Waldo, born at Boston, Mass., 1803 ; died 1882. A cele- brated American essayist, lecturer, and poet. 26 HAMLET "It is common for people to talk of Shakespeare's plays, being so natural, that everybody can understand him. They are natural, indeed they are grounded deep in nature, so deep that the depth of them lies out of the reach of most of us." — *Lamb. ""We talk of Shakespeare's admirable observation of life, when we should feel that not from a petty inquisition into those cheap and everyday characters which surrounded him, as they surround us, but from his own mind, which was, to borrow a phrase of Ben Jonson's, the very 'sphere of humanity/ he fetched those images of virtue and of knowledge, of which every one of us, recognizing a part, think we comprehend in our nature the whole." — *Lamb. XI. CHARACTERS OF THE PLAT Claudius, Kmg of Denmark Prominent among the characteristics of this poisoner and smiling villain is his hypocrisy. He can speak of the king, whom he has murdered, as "Hamlet, our dear brother," for whom he and his kingdom grieve "in one brow of woe;" he can speak of the affection he bears the Prince, whom he has deprived of his lawful succession to the throne : And with no less nobility of love Than that which dearest father bears his son, Do I impart toward you. — I. ii. 110. In order to keep him under surveillance, he begs him to remain Here, in the cheer and comfort of our eye, Our ehiefest courtier, cousin, and our son. — I. ii. 116. While in the act of making arrangements for Hamlet's murder he affects a tender regard for his "especial safety," Which we do tender, as we dearly grieve For that which thou hast done. — IV. iii. 45. * Lamb, Charles, born at London, England, 1775 ; died 1834. A noted critic, humorist, and man of letters. INTRODUCTION 27 As many of his speeches give evidence of the blackest hypoc- risy, so his actions, as might be expected from a crafty, double- minded schemer, are often the result of deep-laid plots. He sets spies on Hamlet's movements, and even plays the spy himself. With acuteness and cunning, which he describes as "majesty and skill," he handles the threatening Laertes, and strives on all occasions to avert suspicion from himself. "To bear all smooth and even" is his continual thought; hence, speaking of Hamlet's "mission" to England, he says, This sudden sending him away must seem Deliberate pause. — IV. iii. 8. But all his craft avails him nothing, and his best-laid schemes are doomed to failure. The death of Polonius and his interment "in hugger-mugger" result in rendering the people "muddied, thick and unwholesome in their thoughts and whispers," and these whispers, "as level as the cannon to his blank," make the king their mark. Suspicion that "ever haunts the guilty mind," naturally finds a ready lodging in the soul of Claudius. From the first he regards the "lunacy" of Hamlet as "dangerous." After playing the spy he becomes assured that love is not the cause of Hamlet's madness: There's something in his soul, O'er which his melancholy sits on brood; And, I do doubt, the hatch, and the disclose, Will be some danger: — III. i. 169. Being seized with what his flatterers call, "most holy and re- ligious fear," he sends the Prince to England, giving as his reason that, The terms of our estate may not endure, Hazard so near us as doth hourly grow Out of his lunacies. — III. iii. 5. 28 HAMLET He harps unceasingly upon this fear. He suspects the blow that struck Polonius down was aimed at him: "It had been so with us, had we been there. " " How dangerous is it that this man goes loose !" And, demanding Hamlet's death at the hands of the King of England, he lays bare his wretched soul, For like the hectic in my blood he rages, And thou must cure me: till I know 'tis done, Howe'er my haps, my joys were ne'er begun. — IV. iii. 70. To refer to the conscience of one whose hand is "thicker than itself with brother's blood," and whose heart depends on "springs of steel," may appear to be a perversion of the word, but Shakespeare, knowing that no man was ever utterly lost to all sense of right, has in accordance with nature represented Claudius as possessing a conscience which could at least suffer remorse. There is no reason for supposing that he did not love the queen, though knavery enabled him to conceal his feelings at her death. Hamlet's device to "catch the conscience of the king" was successful, and Polonius unwittingly attained a sim- ilar result : how smart A lash that speech doth give my conscience! — III. i. 49. More than once he wishes the deed undone, but only on an impos- sible condition. He asks most pertinently, "May one be par- doned and retain the offence 1 ' ' III. iii. 57. He is fully conscious of the two-fold efficacy of prayer, yet he cannot pray; neither can he repent : Try what repentance can: what can it not? Yet what can it, when one cannot repent? — III. iii. 66. Thus he palters with his conscience, and his state of mind is truly wretched. Punishment proportionate to his crimes over- takes him, and in anguish he cries out that every new trouble, "like to a murdering-piece in many places," gives him "super- fluous death." INTRODUCTION 29 He is coarse-minded, licentious, drunken. Hamlet contrasts his own father with Claudius, ''Hyperion to a satyr;" and in another place he speaks of the latter as "a mildew 'd ear, blasting his wholesome brother. ' ' He describes the ' ' heavy-headed revel ' ' in which the king takes the leading part : The king doth wake to-night, and takes his rouse, Keeps wassail, and the swaggering up-spring reels; And, as he drains his draughts of Rhenish down, The kettle-drum and trumpet thus bray out The triumph of his pledge. — I. iv. 8. The ghost of the murdered Hamlet describes him as, "That incestuous, that adulterate beast;" and Hamlet himself can find no epithet strong enough to express his loathing. In his opin- ion he is "a murderer and a villain," "a Vice of kings," A cutpurse of the empire and the rule, That from a shelf the precious diadem stole, And put it in his pocket. — III. iv. 98, "a king of shreds and patches," a "bloat king," "a paddock," "a bat, a gib." He is filled with amazement that a man so plau- sible can be so wicked, and turning his thoughts to generaliza- tion, as is his wont, marvels "that one may smile, and smile, and be a villain. ' ' As a king Claudius is not altogether despicable. He is ener- getic, eager to conciliate, and specious. Fortinbras, "holding a weak supposal of his worth, ' ' finds that he is not to be contemned. With regard to Hamlet, he acts "with quick determination," and sends him to England with all possible dispatch. He can be resourceful and brave in an emergency, and can maintain his composure in the face of Laertes' "giant-like rebellion:" Let him go, Gertrude; do not fear our person: There's such divinity doth hedge a king, That treason can but peep to what it would. — IV. v. 105. 30 HAMLET ' ' The king himself is a mass of deception and hypocrisy ; he is a practiced actor, and the perfect master of his looks and movements, and of all his words and actions ; his guilty designs are supported in every case by maturely-weighed and well-con- trived plans." — *TJlrici. "No inward virtues adorn the hypocritical 'laughing vil- lain;' unless it be that quick perception of his understanding and of his guilty conscience, which makes him attentive to every change and threat, which makes him interpret every event, every word, every sigh, which makes him gather round him with skil- ful grasp the weakest spies and tools." — \Gervinus. The Queen The Queen is more the instrument of crime than she is a criminal. She is a weak woman, but not consciously wicked or depraved. She is " seeming- virtuous, " and no doubt deceives herself till she comes to imagine herself really so. She yields readily to the wiles of Claudius, and so gives rise to Hamlet's reflection upon the sex, ' ' Frailty, thy name is woman. ' ' She lives a brief widowhood, although her own better feeling tells her that her second marriage is "o'erhasty," and she weakly allows, herself to be made the, tool of both Claudius and Polonius. Not until Hamlet sets up a glass wherein she can see the heinousness of her conduct, does she realize how low she has fallen. Then she sees within her soul such black and grained spots As will not leave their tinct. — III. iv. 90. Henceforth she leans upon her son rather than upon her hus- band, and does what she can to repair the wrong she has com- mitted. Her emotion illustrates the truth of the Player's maxim, * Ulrici, Hermann, born at Pforten, Prussia, 1806 ; died at Halle, Prussia, 1884. A German theistic philosopher and critic. t Gervinus, George Gottfried, born at Darmstadt, Germany, 1805 ; died at Heidelberg, 1871. A celebrated German historian and critic. INTRODUCTION 31 "Where joy most revels, grief doth most lament. ' ' This emotion, however, is neither deep-seated nor lasting. She mourns the loss of her first husband ' ' like Niobe, all tears, ' ' but ' ' within a month, ' ' Ere yet the salt of most unrighteous tears Had left the flushing in her galled eyes, She married. — I. ii. 154. She passionately loves her son, and "lives almost by his looks," but her love, selfish rather than sympathetic, does not enable her to understand him. The bitterness of his reproofs and the strangeness of his behavior drive her almost mad, so that the Ghost is constrained to bid Hamlet "step between her and her fighting soul," reminding him that "Conceit in weakest bodies strongest works. ' ' After Hamlet has exhibited her crimes to her sick soul, "Each toy seems prologue to some great amiss." The play affords no evidence that she connived at her hus- band's murder. On the contrary, all the evidence points to the fact that her first knowledge of the crime came from Hamlet. Her surprise at the charge of killing a king was not feigned, and her conscience was not touched, as Claudius' was, during the representation of the Interlude. Moreover, the ghost of her first husband appeared to retain some affection for her, and had warned Hamlet not to taint his mind or let his soul contrive aught against her. Finally, when once she learned the manner of her husband 's death she took the part of Hamlet against Claudius, from whom henceforth she hid all her "dear concernings. " Again, her kind and loving treatment of the sweet Ophelia will always "plead with angel tongues" against her accusers. "The affection of the wicked queen for this gentle and innocent creature is one of those beautiful and redeeming touches, one of those penetrating glances into the secret springs of natural and feminine feeling, which we find only in Shakespeare." — *Mrs. Jameson, * Mrs. Jameson, ned Anna Brownell Murphy, born at Dublin, 1794 ; died 1860. An extensive writer on art and literature. 32 HAMLET "The timid, self-indulgent, sensuous, sentimental queen is as remote from true woman's virtue as Claudius is from the vir- tues of royal manhood." — *Dowden. "In the queen we discern the confidence of a guilty mind, that by the artifice of self-deceit, has put to silence the upbraid- ings of conscience." — f Richardson. Hamlet, Prince of Denmark In the analysis of Hamlet's character, we will endeavor, first to discover what Hamlet was, by nature and by education, before the period of the play; then by observing his attitude toward those who surrounded him, and his behavior under all circum- stances we may arrive at a correct appreciation of those mental and moral qualities, the sum of which constitutes what is known as character. Hamlet may be regarded as having been fair of countenance, for he was of Scandinavian descent, and of a somewhat phleg- matic, not to say indolent, disposition. He was of slight build, as may be gathered from the comparison he draws between his uncle and his father, My father's brother, but no more like my father Than I to Hercules.— I. ii. 152. His mother's statement that "he is fat, and scant of breath," need not be taken literally, for she is speaking under the influence of great emotion and great fear, and in her love for her son she naturally exaggerates the contrast which he presents to the more striking figure of Laertes. Undoubtedly he inherited from his father A station like the herald Mercury, New-lighted on a heaven -kissing hill. — III. iv. 58; * Dowden, Edward, born at Cork, Ireland, 1843; still alive (1916). An eminent Irish critic and poet. t Richardson, William, born at Aberfoyle, Scotland, 1743 ; died 1814. A noted Scotch essayist, poet, and Shakespearean scholar. INTKODUCTION 33 and the amiability of his countenance and the grace of his person made him the darling of the Queen, who "lives upon his looks," and of the populace, "who like not with their judgment, but their eyes." Admitting that Ophelia regarded him with partial eyes, and allowing for natural exaggeration, he is still a noble and princely youth : The courtier's, soldier's, scholar's, eye, tongue, sword; The expectancy and rose of the fair state, The glass of fashion, and the mould of form, The observed of all observers. — III. i. 156. "Pleasing in form, polished by nature, courteous from the heart, he was meant to be the pattern of youth, and the joy of the world." — *Goethe, Wilhelm Meister's Apprenticeship. By nature Hamlet was of a cheerful though quiet disposition. In his childhood he had played with Yoriek, "a fellow of infinite jest, of most excellent fancy, ' ' whose lips he had kissed he knew not how often. He had delighted in those "flashes of merriment, that were wont to set the table on a roar." The melancholy which he exhibits in the course of the play appears to his former friends and acquaintance unnatural and unaccountable : (Something have you heard Of Hamlet's transformation; so I call it, Since nor the exterior nor the inward man Eesembles that it was. — II. ii. 4. x . In the play he is humorous and witty, and is cheerful and unre- served when he forgets his troubles, as in his first interview with Rosencrantz and Guildenstern, or when he entertains the strolling players, II. ii. (But his disposition to humor is often changed by the pressure of circumstances. This is manifest in his satiric conversations with Polonius and Osric, or in his quaint, familiar * Goethe, Johann Wolfgang von, born at Frankfort-on-the-Main, 1749 ; died 1832. A famous German poet, dramatist, and prose-writer ; the greatest name in German literature. 34 HAMLET language, recalling perhaps the habits of a former and almost forgotten age, as when he addresses the Ghost, Ah, ha, boy! say'st thou so? art thou there, truepenny? Come on — you hear this fellow in the cellarage, — I. v. 132. ) He is by nature a hater of shams, a despiser of artifice and dis- simulation, scrupulous even in the smallest matters, a seeker after the truth, a true friend, a gentle and devoted son, and a warm but not passionate lover. "One of the deepest characteristics of Hamlet's nature is a longing for sincerity, for truth in mind and manners, an aver- sion from all that is false, affected, or exaggerated." — *Dowden. 1 ' To a frame of mind naturally strong and contemplative, but rendered by extraordinary events skeptical and intensely thoughtful, he unites an undeviating love of rectitude, a dispo- sition of the gentlest kind, feelings the most delicate and pure, and a sensibility painfully alive to the smallest deviation from virtue or propriety of conduct." — f Drake. (f? His first thought after receiving the injunction of his father's ghost is to wipe away all trivial fond records, All saws of books, all forms, all pressures past, That youth and observation copied there. — I. v. 81. He frequently expresses himself in abstractions and generalities, thus indicating a cultivated mind. This he does even when most violently moved, as when he says, My tables, — meet it is I set it down, That one may smile, and smile, and be a villain. — I. v. 89; and again There are more things in heaven and earth, Horatio, Than are dreamt of in your philosophy. — I. v. 1£8. * See footnote, p. 32. t Drake, Nathan, born at York, England, 1776 ; died 1836. An English phy- sician and author. INTRODUCTION 35 He has left the University of Wittenberg, and is living in a gay and frivolous court. He "keeps aloof," and continues his studies. He is a critic of the drama, and can appreciate "an excellent play, well digested in the scenes, set down with as much modesty as cunning. ' ' He has some experience in writing dramas, and has studied the actor's art and everything pertaining to it. (See III, ii. 1-40.) ' ' He is essentially a man of letters ; he carries memorandum books with him; allusions to his reading are ready to him; in advanced years he was still at the University, and longed to return there. . . . No royal ambition urges him to the society of his equals ; his associate is the scholar Horatio, the friend of his school days and his fellow-student." — *Oervinus. He abhors the custom of drinking, and the "heavy headed revel" which then seemed to characterize the Danish court. ' ' To my mind," he says, though I am native here And to the manner born, — it is a custom More honour 'd in the breach than the observance. — I. iv. 14. The mind is his kingdom, and his thoughts and speculations are more to him than are the common realities of life. The ambition of Fortinbras stirs him not. \ His mother's want of modesty and shame, and the king's grossness affect him more profoundly than does the crime of murder. In refinement and culture he is in advance of his age. ' ' Forgive me this my virtue, ' ' he says to his mother, For in the fatness of these pursy times Virtue itself of vice must pardon beg, Yea, curb and woo, for leave to do him good. — III. iv. 151. "Pure in sentiment, he knew the honorable-minded, and could prize the rest which an upright spirit tastes on the bosom * See footnote, p. 30. 36 HAMLET of a friend. To a certain degree, he had learned to discern and value the good and the beautiful in arts and sciences; the mean and the vulgar were offensive to him ; and if hatred could take root in his tender soul, it was only so far as to make him prop- erly despise the false and changeful insects of a court, and play with them in easy scorn." — * Goethe, Wilhelm Meister's Appren- ticeship. "Exquisitely sensible of moral beauty and deformity, he dis- cerns turpitude in a parent. Surprise, on a discovery so pain- ful and unexpected, adds bitterness to his sorrow." — t Rich- ardson. "0 what a noble mind is here o'erthrown !" cries out Ophelia at the end of that interview in which Hamlet so successfully played the part of a man "blasted with ecstasy"; and she goes on to speak of that noble and most sovereign reason, Like sweet bells jangled. — III. i. 162, from which we may infer how high had been his reputation for intellectual power. With shrewd penetration he reads correctly the thoughts, the motives, and the character of others, and is not deceived by Polonius, by his former school-fellows, nor by Ophelia. ' ' In Hamlet he seems to have wished to exemplify the moral necessity of a due balance between our attention to the objects of our senses, and our meditation on the workings of our minds — an equilibrium between the real and imaginary worlds. In Ham- let this balance is disturbed; his thoughts, and the images of his fancy, are far more vivid than his actual perceptions. . . . Hence we see a great, an almost enormous, intellectual activity, and a proportionate aversion to real action consequent upon it. ' ' — %Coleridge. * See footnote, p. 33. t See footnote, p. 32. t See footnote, p. 25. INTRODUCTION 37 His grief for his dead father is profound ; he carries his image constantly in his mind : Earn. My father! — methinks I see my father. Eor. Where, my lord? Ham. In my mind's eye, Horatio. — I. ii. 183. I He has all the sensibilities of a meditative nature, and though he is not demonstrative, yet he is unable to repress entirely the outward indications of what is going on within him. He says truly, ' ' I have that within which passeth show. ' ' His emotion is shown by his irritability towards his uncle and his mother ; it is evident in his weaknesses exhibited later on in sudden and violent passions followed by complete exhaustion: He weeps for what is done. — IV. i. 27. And thus awhile the fit will work on him; Anon, as patient as the female dove, When that her golden couplets are disclosed, His silence will sit drooping. — V. i. 308. His apparent cruelty and rudeness towards Ophelia result probably from his attempts to restrain his overwrought emotions. His wavering attitude with respect to religion is due to a con- tinued conflict between his emotions and his reason, between instinctive faith and intellectual doubt. ' ' Hamlet is not merely or chiefly intellectual ; the emotional side of his character is quite as important as the intellectual; his malady is as deep seated in his sensibilities and in his heart as it is in the brain. If all his feelings translate themselves into thoughts, it is no less true that all his thoughts are impregnated with feeling. ' ' — *Dowden. The characteristics which most impress the student or the spectator of the play are Hamlet's settled melancholy and his irresolution. His melancholy often renders him sarcastic and morose; his irresolution gives rise to indolence, doubts, incon- * See footnote, p. 32. 38 HAMLET sistency, fatalism, and impulsive action. This melancholic dispo- sition becomes manifest at the very outset of the drama when he appears with "dejected haviour of the visage," mourning for his father. The Queen beseeches him, Do not, for ever, with thy vailed lids Seek for thy noble father in the dust. — I, ii. 70. His uncle bids him "throw to earth this unprevailing woe." The company passes out and he is left alone. His first words indicate the depths of despair to which he has fallen through grief and through indulgence in a mysterious foreboding of evil : O, that this too too solid flesh would melt, Thaw, and resolve itself into a dew! — I. ii. 129. Polonius has observed his melancholy, and puts his own false construction upon it, And he, repulsed — a short tale to make — Fell into a sadness; then into a fast; — II. ii. 147. In conversation with his old school-fellows Hamlet describes the change that has taken place within him. 1, I have of late — but wherefore I know not — lost all my mirth, forgone all custom of exercises; and, indeed, it goes so heavily with my disposition that this goodly frame, the earth, seems to me a sterile promontory; this most excellent canopy, the air, look you, — this brave o'erhanging firmament, this majestical roof fretted with golden fire, — why, it appears no other thing to me but a foul and pestilent congregation of vapours. — II. ii. 312. \ Thus lie has come to look with a jaundiced eye upon all nature, physical and human, in which he once delighted. He speculates on death, and meditates suicide; he "walks for hours together" in the palace hall, his gait and visage bespeaking woe. The king fears him, There's something in his soul, O'er which his melancholy sits on brood; — III. i. 169. INTRODUCTION 39 After the Players' recitation he refers to his melancholy, ingeni- ously weaving it into one of the many excuses by which he habitually deceives himself as to the cause of his inaction. "Per- haps," he says, "the devil Out of my weakness, and my melancholy, As lie is very potent with such spirits, Abuses me to damn me: — II. ii. 641. He haunts graveyards, he is stirred to a passionate excitement at the sight of Laertes, "whose grief bears such an emphasis," and would "make a match with him in shedding tears." His wit and humor of former days have now become bitter sarcasm or withering irony. He speaks of the king in terms of haughty disdain or of scornful disgust. During the Interlude he takes a keen delight in lashing the king's conscience, 'Tis a knavish piece of work: but what of that? your majesty, and we that have free souls, it touches us not: let the galled jade wince, our withers are unwrung. — III. ii. 238. His mocking words are daggers to the queen, his mother : For who, that's but a queen, fair, sober, wise, Would from a paddock, from a bat, a gib, Such dear concernings hide? — III. iv. 182. Under the cloak of madness he utters cutting truths to Polonius, to Rosencrantz and Guildenstern, and plays satirically with the foppish courtier, Osric. He endangers his own safety by ad- dressing words of double meaning to his uncle, the king, who is all the while suspicious of him. "Farewell, dear mother," he says to him on leaving for England, King. Thy loving father, Hamlet. Sam. My mother: father and mother is man and wife; man and wife is one flesh; and so, my mother. — IV. iii. 54. i First his father's death throws him into profound grief; then the impropriety of his mother's behavior, her ingratitude to the memory of her former husband, and her choice of such 40 HAMLET a man as Claudius to be her second spouse, offend his refined spirit, and afflict his soul. Add to these causes a suspicion of his uncle's guilt, which suspicion later becomes a certainty, a consciousness of his duty to avenge his father's death, and a knowledge of the difficulty of performing this duty. All these causes, acting upon a nature formed for meditation and a tranquil life, throw him into a state of melancholy which soon becomes a permanent condition. \ "It has been objected to the character of Hamlet, whose most striking feature is profound melancholy, that its keeping is broken in upon by an injudicious admixture of humor and gaiety ; but he who is acquainted with the workings of the human heart will be far, very far indeed, from considering this as any deviation from the truth of nature. Melancholy, when not the offspring of an ill-spent life . . ., will sometimes spring with playful elasticity from the pressure of the heaviest burden, and dissipating, for a moment, the anguish of a breaking heart, will, like a sunbeam in a winter's day, illumine all around it with a bright but transient ray ... an interchange which serves but to render the returning storm more deep and gloomy. ' ' — *Drake. |lt may be well to consider, under various aspects, Hamlet's irresolution as the predominating feature of his complex charac- ter. After pointing out the different occasions upon which he exhibits it, we shall show how it acts upon other phases of his character, making him inconsistent, skeptical, a fatalist, cunning, and even cruel. We shall further show how it brings its own punishment not only upon Hamlet himself, but upon others as well; and finally we shall attempt an explanation of its cause. 1. He does nothing immediately after receiving the Ghost's com- mands. We shall indicate later that his madness was not assumed with any view of furthering his revenge. 2. He allows two months to pass without taking any steps to compass his object. * See footnote, p. 34. INTRODUCTION 41 3. He neglects the opportunity to kill the king while the king is at prayer. His decision to allow him to escape at such a moment is only part of his general irresolution. 4. He trusts the judgment of Horatio rather than his own to watch the effect of the play upon the king. Having at- tained his purpose, he rejoices in the success of his strata- gem, but this confirmation of his suspicions leads to no action on his part. 5. He allows himself to be sent to England, away from the object of his revenge. 6. The promptings of his heart forbid the encounter with Laertes, V. ii. 224, but he heeds not these promptings nor will he listen to the advice of Horatio, V. ii. 231, to postpone the duel. After listening to the Players he shows that he is sensible of his weakness. Contrasting himself with the Actor, he says : What would he do, Had he the motive and the cue for passion That I have?— II. ii. 597. For it cannot be But I am pigeon-liver 'd, and lack gall To make oppression bitter; or, ere this, I should have fatted all the region kites With this slave's offal.— II. ii. 615. He touches the secret of his indecision in his famous soliloquy on death and suicide when he says : Thus conscience does make cowards of us all; And thus the native hue of resolution Is sicklied o'er with the pale cast of thought; And enterprises of great pith and moment, With this regard, their currents turn awry, And lose the name of action. — III. i. 80. When the Ghost comes between him and his terrified mother, he knows, before it speaks, that the visitation is to remind him of his ' ' almost blunted purpose : ' ' 42 HAMLET Do you not come your tardy son to chide That, lapsed in time and passion, lets go by The important acting of your dread command? — III. iv. 105. Again the consciousness of his own irresolution strikes him most forcibly by contrast with the impetuous ardor of Fortinbras : How all occasions do inform against me, And spur my dull revenge! — IV. iv. 31. How stand I, then, That have a father kill'd, a mother stain 'd, Excitements of my reason and my blood, And let all sleep?— IV. iv. 55. Finally, in conversation with Horatio, he shows how clearly it is his duty to slay the king that had killed his father, stained his mother, excluded himself from the throne, and angled for his life : is't not perfect conscience, To quit him with this arm? and is't not to be damn'd To let this canker of our nature come In further evil?— V. ii. 67. "There is no indecision about Hamlet, as far as his own sense of duty is concerned; he knows well what he ought to do, and over and over again he makes up his mind to do it." — *Coleridge. To such an extent does irresolution work upon Hamlet's character that it tends to give the superficial reader a false im- pression of his true nature. In the following paragraphs we have attempted to show to what extent his character changes under this influence. Infirmity of purpose, joined to a natural nobility of instinct and impulse, cannot fail to lead to many inconsistencies. In this respect Hamlet resembles the great majority of mortals, Who see the right and do approve it too, Condemn the wrong, and yet the wrong pursue.f Not only are Hamlet's actions inconsistent with his opinions, his purposes, and his thoughts, but his thoughts themselves are * See footnote, p. 25. t Compare Ovid Met. vii. 29. INTEODUCTION 43 inconsistent with one another. This kind of inconsistency is manifested generally in his reflections on matters connected with religion. "We may discern it in his skepticism. At the beginning of the play he is an adherent of all the dogmas of the Roman Catholic Church. He believes in pur- gatory, in hell, in the devil, and in the miraculous power of con- fession, holy communion, and extreme unction. At one time he gives credence to the re-appearance of the dead in order to reveal and punish murder ; at another time he speaks of The undiscover 'd country, from whose bourn No traveller returns. — III. i. 76. In one breath he declares, "It is an honest ghost, that let me tell you;" in another, he strives to persuade himself that The spirit that I have seen May be the devil.— II. ii. 638. Toward the end of the play, reason almost ceases to be his guide. He has persuaded himself that Our indiscretion sometimes serves us well, When our deep plots do pall. — V. ii. 8. His carefully prepared schemes prove abortive, because, though full of purpose, he is "void of that quality of the mind which accomplishes purpose. ' ' — * Coleridge. He willingly allows himself to drift, and becomes a fatalist. He "worships fatality, and he is apt to regard whatever pertains thereto as incontestable, solemn, and beautiful. . . . The unbending, malignant goddess is more acceptable than the divinity, who only asks for an effort that shall avert disaster." — t Maeterlinck. He excuses his inac- tion by attributing it to a decree of fate: There's a divinity that shapes our ends, Eough-hew them how we will. — V. ii. 10 * See footnote, p. 25. t Maeterlinck, Maurice, born 1864 ; still living 1916. A noted Belgian poet. 44 HAMLET are the words with which he disclaims responsibility for his own questionable conduct, e. g. the opening the sealed packet and sending his school-fellows to death. Before the duel with Laertes he again gives expression to his fatalistic convictions. There is a special providence in the fall of a sparrow. If it be now, 'tis not to come ; if it be not to come, it will be now ; if it be not now, yet it will come. — V. ii. 234. ' ' Hamlet has no firm belief either in himself or in anything else ; from expressions of religious confidence he passes over to skeptical doubts. . . . He has even gone so far as to say, 'There is nothing either good or bad, but thinking makes it so. ' ' ' — *8chlegel. "Thus all through the play he wavers between materialism and spiritualism, between belief in immortality and disbelief, between reliance upon providence and a bowing under fate." — fDowden. "Shakespeare's teaching is, that if the nobler-gifted man who stands at the head of the commonwealth, allows himself to be driven about by every wind of the occasion, instead of fur- thering his better aims with all his strength and energy of will, the wicked, on their part, will all the more easily carry out their own ends." — %Feis. As is usually the case with irresolute persons, Hamlet fre- quently acts from impulse or from blind passion. The conse- quence is he often performs deeds of which he afterwards repents. Such are the murder of Polonius and the struggle with Laertes in the grave. At other times he acts without reflection and afterwards persuades himself that he has done wisely. On the ship he acts before he can ' ' make a prologue to his brains, ' ' and becomes accessory to the murder of two innocent men. His impulsiveness is in reality but a sign of his irresolution. He * Schlegel, August Wilhelm von, born at Hanover, Germany, 1767 ; died 1845. A celebrated German critic and poet, t See footnote, p. 32. t Feis, Jacob, author of Shakespeare and Montaigne, published in 1884. INTEODUCTION 45 follows his father's ghost in a state of wild excitement, uttering the threat, "By heaven, I'll make a ghost of him that lets me." "When the travelling players arrive in Elsinore he proposes immediate action. "We'll e'en to 't like French falconers fly at anything we see : we '11 have a speech straight. ' ' And when at last he stabs the king the action is unpremeditated. This irresolution has the further evil effect of making him a deceptive, shrewd, and cunning contriver. He sacrifices innocent men with cold premeditation and rejoices at their destruction: For 'tis the sport, to have the enginer Hoist with his own petard: and 't shall go hard, But I will delve one yard below their mines, And blow them at the moon: 0, 'tis most sweet, "When in one line two crafts directly meet. — III. iv. 199. "He who is so irritable an enemy to all dissimulation, false- hood, and cunning, venturing not upon the straight path to action, he himself takes the crooked way of cunning circum- locution and deceiving dissimulation." — *Gervinus. 1 1 He is made for honesty, and he is compelled to practice a shifting and subtle strategy; thus he comes to waste himself in ingenuity and orafty device." — \Dowden. To resist temptation is to strengthen character, to give way to it is to weaken the power of resistance. Hamlet gives way to his natural tendency to think rather than to act. Conse- quently his character deteriorates as has been shown on p. 40 and seq. The effect of his irresolution upon himself is a continual torture of mind which he expresses thus: Sir, in my heart there was a kind of fighting That would not let me sleep: methought I lay Worse than the mutines in the bilboes. — V. ii. 4. It results in his own death and in the death of others, of the innocent as well as of the guilty. Horatio promises to explain * See footnote, p. 30. t See footnote, p. 32. 46 HAMLET the dismal sight with which the play concludes. ' ' So shall you hear," he says, Of carnal, bloody, and unnatural acts, Of . accidental judgments, casual slaughters, Of deaths put on by cunning, and forced cause; And, in this upshot, purposes mistook Fall'n on the inventors' heads. — V. ii. 399. "In the first tumult of his feelings, and without adequate cause, he throws away the fair flower of Ophelia's love, which he himself had planted and watered ; with inconsiderate rashness he kills the old dotard Polonius in mistake for the guilty king, and so brings upon himself the blame of causing Ophelia's madness and death. By a just retribution a tragic end over- whelms Hamlet himself, so quickly and unexpectedly, that he has scarcely time for the hurried and precipitate accomplish- ment of his long meditated purpose." — *TJlrici. The irresolution of Hamlet appears to arise from several causes, of which the following seem to be the principal : 1. He is naturally prone to think rather than to act. Being continually wrapped in thought he forgets action: And thus the native hue of resolution Is sicklied o'er with the pale cast of thought. — III. i. 81. But this cause alone is not enough to account for his inde- cision, for the necessity for action is often borne in upon him. 2. Moral scruples and a Christian spirit deter him. The par- ticular action that is required of him is most abhorrent to his sensitive and scrupulous spirit. He hesitates lest he should do such bitter business as the day Would quake to look on. — III. ii. 404. * See footnote, p. 30. INTRODUCTION 47 3. The difficulty of his task he expresses in the lines : The time is out of joint: — O cursed spite, That ever I was born to set it right! — I. v. 171. His vivid imagination exaggerates the difficulties, and his natural modesty fills him with a sense of his own insufficiency. "To me it is clear that Shakespeare meant, in the present case, to represent the effects of a great action laid upon a soul unfit for the performance of it. In this view the whole piece seems to me to be composed. An oak is planted in a costly jar, which should have contained only the sweetest flowers ; the root expands, the jar is burst asunder. "A lovely, pure, noble, and most moral nature, without the strength of nerve which forms a hero, sinks beneath a burden which it cannot bear and must not cast away." — * Goethe, Wil- helm Heist er's Apprenticeship. "Hamlet is called upon to assert moral order in a world of moral confusion and obscurity. He has not an open plain or a hillside on which to fight his battle ; but a place dangerous and misleading, with dim and winding ways. ... In the wide- spreading waste of corruption which lies around him, he is tempted to understand and detest things, rather than accom- plish some limited practical service. In the unweeded garden of the world, why should he task his life to uproot a single weed?" — \Dowden. We think Laertes estimates Hamlet's conduct towards Ophelia by the standard of his own behavior, when he speaks of "the trifling of his favour," and bids her regard it as a pastime, Forward, not permanent; sweet, not lasting, The perfume and supplianee of a minute; No more. — I. iii. 8. But even he did not — as some critics have done — charge Hamlet with practicing conscious deception upon Ophelia: * See footnote, p. 33. t See footnote, p. 32. 48 HAMLET Perhaps he loves you now; And now no soil nor cautel doth besmirch The virtue of his will. — I. iii. 14. Of Ophelia's love for him there can be no doubt, although she never confesses it. She yields, perhaps, too ready an obedience to her brother and her father, but she certainly places a most implicit trust in the honor of her lover, My lord, he hath importuned me with love, In honourable fashion. — I. iii. 110. The interview described by Ophelia, but not presented on the stage, takes place after Hamlet has seen his father's Ghost and received his injunctions. No doubt Hamlet on this occasion approaches Ophelia with the intention, which he afterwards car- ries out, of renouncing woman, "the begetter of all evil in the world, who makes such monsters of wise men. ' ' The depth of the love he feels for her is clearly shown by the picture of the agony he suffers at taking leave of her, when He raised a sigh so piteous and profound, As it did seem to shatter all his bulk, And end his being.— II. i. 90. He continues to love her, but he will not have her know it. When he says, Soft you now I The fair Ophelia! — Nymph, in thy orisons Be all my sins remember 'd. — III. i. 85, the words are not intended to reach her ears. When she turns to him he feigns madness again, perhaps with a view, as Lamb says, "to alienate Ophelia by affected discourtesies, so to pre- pare her mind for the breaking off of that loving intercourse, which can no longer find a place amidst business so serious as that which he has to do. ' ' We believe he speaks from his heart of hearts when he exclaims: INTRODUCTION 49 I loved Ophelia: forty thousand brothers Could not, with all their quantity of love, Make up my sum. — V. i. 292. "His conduct to Ophelia is quite natural in his circum- stances. It is that of assumed madness only. It is the effect of disappointed hope, of bitter regrets, of affection suspended, not obliterated, by the distractions of the scene around him. . . . He could neither marry Ophelia nor wound her mind by explaining the cause of his alienation, which he durst hardly trust himself to think of. . . . In the harassed state of his mind, he could not have done much otherwise than he did." — *Hazlitt. "I do think, with submission, that the love of Hamlet for Ophelia is deep, is real, and is precisely the kind of love which such a man as Hamlet would feel for such a woman as Ophelia. ' ' — \Mrs. Jameson. "He loved her more than a thousand brothers, with all their love put together could have done." — %Heine. The question is someties asked, Was Hamlet really mad, or did he merely assume madness? Common sense at once replies that he was perfectly sane, and that he feigned madness only that he might deceive others. Medical authorities are at vari- ance on the point, probably owing to the difficulty they experi- ence in attaching a precise and definite significance to the word madness. We may consider his conduct under three phases : 1. When he both appears to be and is periectly sane. 2. When he appears mad but is only feigning madness, as in (a) His interview with Polonius, whom he wishes to de- ceive, II. ii; * Hazlitt, William, born at Maidstone, England, 1778 ; died 1830. An English critic and essayist. t See footnote, p. 31. X Heine, Heinrich, born at Dtisseldorf, Germany, 1799 ; died at Paris, 1856. A celebrated German lyric poet and critic, of Hebrew descent. 50 HAMLET (b) His interview with Ophelia, whom he cannot trust with his secret, III. i ; (c) His interview with Claudius, whom he wishes both to deceive and to punish, IV. iii. 3. "When, under the immediate influence of some stupendous shock, his intellect staggers, but is not overthrown, as (a) After seeing his father's spirit, I. v; (b) On hearing of Ophelia's death and perceiving Laertes' manifestations of grief, V. i. It is only in this third phase that Hamlet's conduct lends color to the assumption that he is really mad, and not merely "mad in craft." "We acknowledge, as he himself does, that on the first of the two occasions referred to, his mind was disordered and his disposition horribly shaken "With thoughts beyond the reaches of our souls, ' ' and that on the second occasion he forgets himself, and that, too, for insufficient reason: But, sure, the bravery of his grief did put me Into a towering passion. — V. ii. 79. But if to be violently agitated, and in our agitation to perform actions which in our saner moments we should not dream of, is to be mad, which of us is sane ? The obvious reasons for considering Hamlet's madness as feigned, are: 1. His actions are perfectly sane until his interview with the Ghost. After this interview he warns his friends that he may perchance "put an antic disposition on." 2. He appears mad only in the presence of those whom he wishes to deceive. He talks rationally and shows great intellectual power in conversation with Horatio, his school-fellows, the Players, and in his soliloquies. 3. He earnestly and urgently exhorts his mother not to "lay that flattering unction to her soul" that he is speaking to INTEODUCTION 51 her "in madness," offering to prove to her his perfect sanity : My pulse, as yours, doth temperately keep time, And makes as healthful music; it is not madness That I have utter 'd: bring me to the test, And I the matter will re-word; which madness Would gambol from. — III. iv. 138. 4. When he does forget himself, he afterwards recognizes the fact and repents of it. "Harassed from without, and distracted from within, is it wonderful, if during his endeavor to conceal his thoughts, he should betray inattention to those around him, incoherence of speech and manner? . . . Hamlet was fully sensible how strange those involuntary improprieties must appear to others; he was conscious he could not suppress them; he knew he was surrounded with spies; and was justly apprehensive, lest his suspicions or purposes should be discovered." — * Richardson. To prevent these consequences, and at the same time, to afford himself breathing time, he counterfeits insanity. "He assumes madness as a means of concealing his actual disturbance of mind. His over-excitability may betray him ; but if it be a received opinion that his mind is unhinged, such an excess of over-excitement will pass unobserved and unstudied." — \Dowden. "The disguise which he had adopted was not accidentally chosen. The subtlety of his intellect directed him to that tone of wayward sarcasm in which, while he appeared to others to be merely wandering, the bitterness of his soul might be re- lieved by the utterance of 'wild and whirling words.' But even in this disguise, his intellectual supremacy is constantly mani- fested. ' ' — %Knigkt. * See footnote, p. 32. t See footnote, p. 32. t Knight, Charles, born at Windsor, England, 1791 ; died 1873. An English publisher and author. 52 HAMLET Polonius Polonius is a man who has grown gray in courts where he has imbibed many a lesson of servility, adulation, and worldly prudence. Of real wisdom he possesses not a trace, and he for- feits all claim to the respect which his age ought to gain for him, by his paltry cunning, garrulity, and overweening self- confidence. He is, in fact, in his second childhood, or, as Rosencrantz says, "Happily he's the second time come" to his "swathing- clouts. " All his actions betray his self-conceit, and he does not hesitate to proclaim his own high opinion of himself. He is confident he has found the cause of Hamlet's madness: Hath there been such a time — I'd fain know that — , That I have positively said, ' ' 'Tis so, " When it proved otherwise? — II. ii. 154, he asks the king, and when the king replies, "Not that I know," continues, Take this from this, if this be otherwise: If circumstances lead me, I will find Where truth is hid, though it were hid indeed Within the centre. — II. ii. 157. And further he stakes his reputation as a statesman upon the truth of his statements, If he love her not, And be not from his reason fall'n thereon, Let me be no assistant for a state, But keep a farm and carters. — II. ii. 165. There is nothing he cannot do, if we may believe him. He poses as a critic of literature and the drama, and says that in his younger days he "was accounted a good actor." It is even a matter for boasting with him that in his youth he "suffered much extremity for love ; very near this," referring to Hamlet's apparent distraction. INTRODUCTION 53 Falling in love with the sound of his own voice, he speaks on every subject, delights in puns and "foolish figures," uses many words in which to clothe little matter, forgets in the middle what he was saying, and with a perversity as strange as it is true to nature, utters wise maxims and sins against them in the same breath, as when he says, Therefore, since brevity is the soul of wit, And tediousness the limbs and outward flourishes, I will be brief.— II. ii. 90, and then by his loquacity draws upon himself the Queen's rebuke, "More matter, with less art," and at another time elicits Hamlet's ejaculation, "These tedious old fools." His folly arises almost entirely from his self-conceit. He considers his strength lies in penetration, whereas he is in reality most easily deceived. Being filled with a most exalted notion of his own shrewdness, and feeling sure that Hamlet is mad, he fails to see that he himself is a laughing stock and the object of the Prince's pointed satire. His folly is apparent to others besides Hamlet; hence when the latter bids the Player "follow that lord," he warns him at the same time, "And look you mock him not. ' ' After Hamlet has slain Polonius in mistake for the king, and has discovered his error, he drags forth the corpse, and thus sums up his character in a few words, Indeed, this counsellor Is now most still, most secret, and most grave, "Who was in life a foolish prating knave. — III. iv. 204. Polonius is just the man to suit the king. Faithful in service, not too scrupulous nor too penetrating, he is a most useful instrument in the hands of the greater villain, Claudius, who speaks of him to Laertes with gratitude, The head is not more native to the heart, The hand more instrumental to the mouth, Than is the throne of Denmark to thy father. — I. ii. 47. 54 HAMLET He serves his master with assiduity and officiousness, and de- clares, I hold my duty, as I hold my soul, Both to my God, and to my gracious king. — II. ii. 44. For him, to be deceitful is to be wise, and he takes it to be the mark of a courtier, "too much proved," that with devotion's visage, And pious action, we do sugar o'er The de^vil himself.— III. i. 47. "For crooked ways, for side-thrusts, for eaves-dropping, he has an unwearied predilection, to which he is at length sacri- ficed." He sets a spy upon his son's actions in Paris, and be- lieves "it is a fetch of warrant." He thinks that to use a "bait of falsehood" in order to take "a carp of truth" is a token "of wisdom and of reach." In the end he falls a victim to his meddlesomeness and taste for eaves-dropping: Thou wretched, rash, intruding fool, farewell! I took thee for thy better: take thy fortune; Thou find'st to be too busy is some danger. — III. iv. 31. As Goethe* says, he speaks like a book when he is prepared beforehand, and like an ass when he utters the overflowings of his heart. His parting speech to Laertes is full of worldly wisdom. As long as he confines himself to generalities his advice may be safely followed, but when he advises in particular instances, as in the case of Hamlet's relations with Ophelia, he generally overshoots the mark. Yet, even for his unwarranted suspicion, he has an excuse to offer in a maxim which sounds much like wisdom, beshrew my jealousy! By heaven, it is as proper to our age To cast beyond ourselves in our opinions, As it is common for the younger sort To lack discretion. — II. i. 109. ■* See footnote, p. 33. INTRODUCTION 55 As a father he has been something of a martinet, exacting ready obedience from both his children. He loves them, and is anxious that they should stand well with the world. Therefore, he has kept Ophelia apart from the demoralizing tendencies of the court, and he is solicitous that Laertes should commit no act in Paris by which his reputation might suffer. But his ideas of education are, to say the least, peculiar; immorality, gaming, drinking, or swearing are trifling offences in his opinion. "Polonius is a perfect character in its kind; nor is there any foundation for the objections which have been made to the con- sistency of this part It is said that he acts very foolishly and talks very sensibly. There is no inconsistency in that. Again, that he talks wisely at one time and foolishly at another, that his advice to Laertes is very excellent, and his advice to the King and Queen on the subject of Hamlet's madness very ridiculous. But he gives the one as a father and is sincere in it; he gives the other as a mere, courtier, a busy-body, and is accordingly officious, garrulous, and impertinent." — *Hazlitt. "A maxim is a conclusion upon observation of matters of fact, and is merely retrospective . . . Polonius is a man of maxims. While he is descanting on matters of past experience, as in that excellent speech to Laertes before he sets out on his travels, he is admirable ; but when he comes to advise or project, he is a mere dotard. ... A man of maxims only is like a cyclop with one eye, and that eye placed in the back of his head. ' ' — t Coleridge. "Arrived at a ripe age, the schooled courtier lacks not ex- perience and observation, which he has carefully gathered and loquaciously gives forth ; the self-conceit of emptiness is appar- ent in him, and with the same self-sufficiency he gives good precepts to his son, a lesson on human nature to his servant, and counsels to his king."" — %Gervinus. * See footnote, p. 49. t See footnote, p. 25. $ See footnote, p. 30. 56 HAMLET "The shrewd, wary, subtle, pompous, garrulous old cour- tier. ' ' — *M rs. Jameson. Laertes Laertes is an impetuous youth "of great showing," "the card or calendar of the gentry, ' ' a man of action, and the great- est possible contrast to Hamlet. He is determined in the attainment of his object and unscru- pulous as to the means he adopts to attain it. "By laboursome petition" he overbore his father's reluctance to allow him to return to Paris, and "at last," says Polonius, "Upon his will I sealed my hard consent." He allows no obstacle to stand in the way of his revenge, and is willing even to cut the murderer's throat "i' the church." He who is described as "the continent of what part a gentleman should be ' ' is deterred by no scruples of conscience, no considerations of honor. He poisons the tip of the sword with which he is to "play" with Hamlet, I'll touch my point With thia contagion, that, if I gall him slightly, It may be death. — IV. vii. 145. Such is his determination that he can even exercise patience in the pursuit of his revenge. Having heard of his father's death and his °ecret burial, he at once returns from France, but, being doubtful of the cause, and suspecting no one of foul play towards the old courtier, he "Feeds on his wonder, keeps himself in clouds," until suspicion is cast upon the King. Then he allows free play to his impetuosity, The ocean, overpeering of his list, Eats not the flats with more impetuous haste Than young Laertes, in a riotous head, O'erbears your officers. — IV. v. 85. * See footnote, p. 31. INTRODUCTION 57 No dread of "the undiscovered country, from whose bourn no traveller returns" puzzles him. "To this point I stand," he says, That both the worlds I give to negligence, Let come what comes; only I'll be revenged Most throughly for my father. — IV. v. 117. Not all the world shall stay him, and for his means, he'll hus- band them so well ' ' They shall go far with little. ' ' At the sight of Ophelia's madness his frenzy is still further excited, By heaven, thy madness shall be paid by weight, Till our scale turn the beam. — IV. v. 139. No wonder, then, that the King afterwards confided to his wife How much I had to do to calm his rage! Now fear I this will give it start again. — IV. vii. 191. With characteristic impetuosity and violence he shows his grief on hearing of Ophelia's death. He does not, forever, with "vailed lids" seek for his father and his sister in the dust. Tears gush forth, nature her custom holds, Let shame say what it will. — IV. vii. 186. When she is laid in her grave he leaps in after her to catch her once more in his arms, and his grief bears such an emphasis, says Hamlet, that it Conjures the wandering stars, and makes them stand, Like wonder-wounded hearers. — V. i. 279. Rumors of his wildness must have reached the ears of Ophelia; otherwise the meek and gentle maiden could never have replied to his fraternal advice in this sharp and spirited speech, Do not, as some ungracious pastors do, Show me the steep and thorny way to heaven, 58 HAMLET Whilst, like a puffed and reckless libertine, Himself the primrose path of dalliance treads, And recks not his own rede. — I. iii. 47. He has come from the gay city to see the coronation, and as soon as that is over he returns thither with all speed. His father, knowing him to be addicted to such wanton, wild, and usual slips As are companions noted and most known To youth and liberty,— II. i. 22, has, with reluctance, allowed him to return to Paris, but having given his permission, he sends Reynaldo there to spy upon his actions; so little confidence has the mistrustful father in the son's prudence and self-restraint. "Laertes is the cultured young gentleman of the period. He is accomplished, chivalric, gallant, but the accomplishments are superficial, the chivalry theatrical, the gallantry of a showy kind. He is master of events up to a certain point, because he sees their coarse, gaudy, superficial significance. It is his part to do fine things and make fine speeches. . . . "No overweight of thought, no susceptibility of conscience retard the action of the young gallant. He readily falls in with the king's scheme of assassination, and adds his private contribution of villainy — the venom on his rapier's point." — *Dowden. Contrast Between Laertes and Hamlet Laertes is a man of action ; Hamlet a speculative philosopher. Laertes takes no time for thought, but rushes impetuously toward his object; Hamlet is too much taken up with thought to allow of action. Laertes overcomes every obstacle and uses every opportunity ; Hamlet has fewer obstacles to overcome and neg- lects them. Laertes sullies his knightly honor by poisoning his weapon; Hamlet is of a nature so free and generous that he * See footnote, p. 32. INTRODUCTION 59 does not so much as "peruse the foils." With Hamlet revenge is a religious duty, a duty to his country, to his murdered father and to himself ; with Laertes it is a matter of honor only. And what a contrast there was between the murdered fathers ! the one, A combination, and a form, indeed, Where every god did seem to set his seal. To give the world assurance of a man, — III. iv. 60, the other, a "foolish prating knave," a ridiculous, tedious, pry- ing, self-complacent sinner. "Laertes is the opposite and the pendant to Hamlet. The position of both is nearly the same. Laertes, too, has to avenge the death of a father and sister. His soul, however, kindles at once with passionate ardor. Rejecting all deliberation, his resolutions burst forth at once into action, and it is with diffi- culty that the persuasive eloquence of the King succeeds in restoring him to self-possession, and the adoption of artifice and dissimulation. ' ' — * JJlrici. "Laertes, somewhat of a hero a la mode, a fencer, a knight of honor of the French school, of temperament as choleric as Hamlet's is melancholy, a man utterly unendowed with the splendid physical and mental gifts of Hamlet, flees from the distant Paris to Denmark to avenge the death of his father. ' ' — \Gervinus. Ophelia "Rose of May," "sweet maid," she possesses more of the qualities of the heart than of the head. Although she appears but rarely in the play, and though half the time she is "divided from herself and her fair judgment," "Without the which we are pictures, or mere beasts, ' ' yet her influence is felt throughout the play, and her purity and innocence afford relief and repose amidst the worldliness, the mystery, and the dissimulation which characterize most of the other personages of the drama. * See footnote, p. 30. f See footnote, p. 30. 60 HAMLET Unlike her father and her brother, she possesses no knowledge of the world or of its wickedness, and she remains untouched by the vitiating influences of court life, "Unsifted in such perilous circumstance ; ' ' and hence, when she falls in love with Hamlet and he with her, she devotes herself, heart and soul, to him, and, until restrained by the influence of her father and her brother, has of her "audience been most free and bounteous." Her innocent mind contains no secrets, and she answers readily every question put to her on the subject of her lover. "We must not suppose that Hamlet's strictures on women, III. i., are addressed specially to Ophelia, or that they imply any stain on the virtue or honesty of the docile maid. His upbraid- ings are directed against the sex in general, and are inspired most probably by the recent conduct of his own mother. It is more than possible, also, that Ophelia acts her part so poorly that Hamlet is able to see from her gestures and behavior that the meeting is being watched. His one anxiety appears to be that her innocence and purity may remain unspotted while in contact with the world, and hence he urges her, ' ' Get thee to a nunnery. . . . "We are arrant knaves, all ; believe none of us. Go thy ways to a nunnery." Frivolous and shallow though he be, Laertes can yet appre- ciate and reverence the beauty and purity, of his sister's brief life. "Lay her i' the earth," he commands the priest, And from her fair and unpolluted flesh May violets spring! I tell thee, churlish priest, A ministering angel shall my sister be, When thou liest howling. — V. i. 262. Ophelia's one fault of character is excessive docility. She listens meekly to her brother's precepts, and promises, I shall the effect of this good lesson heep, As watchman to my heart. — I. iii. 45; and in all things she obeys her father, in opposition to the promptings of her own heart. She shows him the letters that are INTRODUCTION 61 in her keeping, and by his command denies all further interviews to Hamlet. She even allows herself to be used as a snare whereby the Prince 's secrets may be discovered, and offers no protest when Polonius bids her play the part of a dissembler, reading on a book, That show of such an exercise may colour Your loneliness. — III. i. 45. Her love for Hamlet is stronger than her discretion. Al- though she never declares her love in words, yet we know her heart is given entirely to him. We can believe that ' ' she would hang on him, ' ' As if increase of appetite had grown By what it fed on. — I. ii. 144. We know she "suck'd the honey of his music vows," and that his loss makes her "of ladies most deject and wretched." And yet we imagine her love is not such that Hamlet can derive strength from it, or that it can enable her to understand him. The Queen hopes in vain that her virtues "Will bring him to his wonted way again, ' ' to the honor of them both. She was born to live in an atmosphere of calm and comfort, not to strive with the conflicting forces of the world. "The Margaret of Goethe* and Ophelia of Shakespeare had perforce to yield mutely to fate, for they were so feeble that each gesture they witnessed seemed fate's own gesture to them. But yet, had they only possessed some fragment of Antigone 's strength — the Antigone of Sophocles — would they not then have transformed the desires of Hamlet and Faust as well as their own ? ' ' — ] Maeterlinck. Unlike the apparently random utterances of Hamlet, whose speech "was not like madness" but had method in it, Ophelia's "speech is nothing," or carries "but half -sense." She alter- nates between laughter and tears, and in her thoughts, flowers and prettiness are strangely intermingled with the wickedness * See footnote, p. 33. f See footnote, p. 43. 62 HAMLET of the world's ways. Her conversation about her father is "interlarded with sweet songs." She becomes a mere picture, * ' incapable of her own distress, ' ' but in her ruin, beautiful still as ever, Thought and affliction, passion, hell itself, She turns to favour, and to prettiness. — IV. v. 171. As Mrs. Jameson* has said : "It is not the suspension, but the utter destruction of the reasoning powers; it is the total imbe- cility which, as medical people well know, frequently follows some terrible shock to the spirits. Constance is frantic ; Lear is mad; Ophelia is insane. Her sweet mind lies in fragments before us — a pitiful spectacle ! ... It belonged to Shakespeare alone so to temper such a picture that we can endure to dwell upon it. 1 ' Ophelia — poor Ophelia ! Oh, far too soft, too good, too fair, to be cast among the briers of this working-day world, and fall and bleed upon the thorns of life ! "What should be said of her ? for eloquence is mute before her! Like a strain of sad, sweet music, which comes floating by us on the wings of night and silence, and which we rather feel than hear — like the exhalation of the violet, dying even upon the sense it charms — like the snowflake, dissolved in air before it has caught a stain of earth — like the light surf severed from the billow, which a breath dis- perses; such is the character of Ophelia." a Horatio Horatio, in contrast to all the other characters of the play, is the representative of common-sense and honesty. He is the one man upon whose judgment Hamlet can rely when all others fail him. He alone affords a happy contradiction to the Player's general statement, The great man down, you mark his favourite flies; The poor advanced makes friends of enemies. — III. ii. 202. * See footnote, p. 31. "L INTEODUCTION 63 Perfect calmness of mind and equability of temperament are his chief characteristics. He is nothing in extremes. A scholar, but not a pedant; he is skeptical, but open to convic- tion ; though not essentially a man of action, as Fortinbras is, he is able to bear his part in the action of the world. He is great in his power of endurance, for he has been — < As one, in suffering all, that suffers nothing; A man that Fortune's buffets and rewards Has ta'en with equal thanks: and blessed are those, Whose blood and judgment are so well commingled, That they are not a pipe for Fortune's finger To sound what stop she please. — III. ii. 72. Hamlet confides in his discretion, and relies upon his calmness and absence of bias to observe the King's demeanor during the acting of the play. Horatio resembles Hamlet in his hatred of all that is shallow, affected, or false, and takes no trouble to conceal his contempt for the " lapwing" Osrie. He is the soul of honor, but holds in no esteem the world's false notions of honor. Therefore, he begs of Hamlet to postpone his fencing bout with Laertes, because he sees that the mind of his friend is not attuned to such a contest, and because he discerns disaster in the issue. Being "more an antique Roman than a Dane," he possesses the firmness of heart, and carelessness about his own life, of a Brutus or a Cato, and would have emulated their exam- ple and died with his friend had not Hamlet reminded him that there remained for him a duty yet to be performed. He is the only man of all those by whom Hamlet is sur- rounded who seeks no material advantage for himself. He pos- sesses the entire confidence of the prince, and into his bosom Hamlet unburdens himself of "the fulness and swellings of the heart, which passions of all kinds do cause and induce." From Horatio, Hamlet derives the support he needs to preserve what balance of mind he still retains ; to him he communicates his suspicions, his griefs, and his designs; without Horatio's 64 HAMLET sympathy, Hamlet would have fallen into a condition of perma- nent despair and pessimism, from which no effort could have aroused him. And Horatio loved Hamlet as he loved his own life; he alone was fully conscious of the true nobility of the prince's character, and therefore the poet has appropriately given it to him to speak those words of praise over his dead body, Now cracks a noble heart: — good night, sweet prince; And flights of angels sing thee to thy rest! — V. ii. 377. "The qualities that distinguish Horatio, and render him worthy of the esteem of Hamlet, are not affluence, nor pa- geantry, nor gay accomplishments, nor vivacity, nor even wit, and uncommon genius, too often allied to an impetuous temper : he is distinguished by that equanimity and independence of soul which arise from governed and corrected passions, from a sound and discerning judgment." — * Richardson. "Horatio's equanimity, his evenness of temper, is like solid land to Hamlet, after the tossings and tumult of his own heart. ' ' — \Dowden. Fortiribras Fortinbras, the nephew of the King of Norway, a prince, ' ' delicate and tender, ' ' but spirited and ambitious, forms a con- trast to both Hamlet and Horatio. He is a man of action, and is never happy unless engaged in "some enterprise that hath a stomach in it. ' ' Being, as Horatio says, ' ' Of unimproved metal hot and full," he engages in martial enterprises merely for the sake of fighting. He furnishes Hamlet an example which he is quick to admire, but powerless to follow. "Examples gross as earth, exhort me," says Hamlet, Witness this army, of such mass and charge, Led by a delicate and tender prince; Whose spirit, with divine ambition puff'd, Makes mouths at the invisible event; * See footnote, p. 32. t See footnote, p. 32. INTRODUCTION 65 Exposing what is mortal, and unsure, To all that fortune, death, and danger dare, Even for an egg-shell. — IV. iv. 46. He is obedient to his uncle, the King of Norway, who, appre- ciating his spirit of adventure, pardons his indiscretion and fur- nishes him with assistance that he may satisfy his craving for action. As he is single-minded and keeps the end to be attained ever in view, he is successful. He returns victorious from his expedition against Poland, an expedition ' ' That hath in it no profit but the name, ' ' and receives Hamlet's dying voice for his election to the sovereignty of Den- mark. The sound of war is music to him, scenes of death a ' ' feast. " " Such a sight as this, ■ ' he says, referring to the scene of carnage with which the play concludes, "Becomes the field, but here shows much amiss." He grieves over the series of disasters that has made his own fortunes, and pays a soldier's tribute to Hamlet, Let four captains Bear Hamlet, like a soldier, to the stagey For he was likely, had he been put on, To have proved most royally. — V. ii. 413. "With none of the rare qualities of the Danish Prince, he excels him in plain grasp of ordinary fact. Shakespeare knows that the success of these men who are limited, definite, positive, will do no dishonor to the failure of the rarer natures to whom the problem of living is more embarrassing, and for whom the tests of the world are stricter and more delicate." — *Dowden. Osric Osric is a representative of the showy aud fashionable cour- tier of Elizabeth's reign, rather than a type of Danish society. His wealth and territorial possessions secure him a position at court, — "he hath much land, and fertile" — his slender intel- * See footnote, p. 32. 66 HAMLET lectual equipment leads him to ape the latest fashion set by a few brilliant spirits, scholars, and litterati (Lyly and his fellow- Euphuists) ; but, like all imitators and converts, he goes farther than his models, whose purpose he misunderstands. He mistakes extravagance and absurdity of diction for wit, ridiculous for- mality for true politeness and courtliness, and affectation for originality : Thus has he (and many more of the same breed, that, I know, the drossy age dotes on) only got the tune of the time, and outward habit of encounter; a kind of yesty collection, which carries them through and through the most fond and winnowed opinions; and do but blow them to their trial, the bub- bles are out. — V. ii. 1P8. He is superficial and shallow, forward and insincere. He either fails to see or pretends not to see that he is a mark for the con- tempt of Horatio and a butt for the satire and mimicry of Ham- let. From the dying words of Laertes we may infer that Osric was a party to the final treachery against Hamlet, Why, as a woodcock to mine own springe, Osric; I am justly killed with mine own treachery. — V. ii. 326, a confession he receives without betraying any mark of aston- ishment. Rosencrantz and Guildenstem Eosencrantz and Guildenstem had been fellow-students of Hamlet at "Wittenberg, and were much beloved by him. "Good gentlemen," says the Queen, he hath much talk'd of you; And, sure I am, two men there are not living To whom he more adheres. — II. ii. 19. They are received with cordiality by the Prince, and are entertained without reserve until he perceives they have been corrupted by the King. They are typical of men whose inclina- tions are good, but who lack character to follow their own inelina- INTRODUCTION 67 tions. They cannot even practice villainy with success. "You were sent for," says Hamlet, "and there is a kind of confession in your looks, which your modesties have not craft enough to colour." They commit no actual crime in the play, and are apparently no worse than the society in which they move. Hamlet tells Rosencrantz that he "soaks up" the king's countenance, his rewards, his authorities; he keeps them, like an ape doth nuts, in the corner of his jaw; first mouthed, to be last swallowed: when he needs what you have gleaned, it is but squeezing you, and, sponge, you shall be dry again, IV. ii. 17. They are fools more than they are knaves, but Shakespeare knows that folly is often more harmful than knavery. When death is meted out to them as a punishment for their base servil- ity, Hamlet satisfies himself with the reflection, Why, man, they did make love to this employment; They are not near my conscience; their defeat Does by their own insinuation grow. — V. ii. 57. He feels no compunction at their fate, and though their punish- ment is severe, they leave the world no poorer for their loss. "Wilhelm Meister translates Hamlet and adapts it for the stage ; a difficulty arises in finding characters to fill all the parts, and Serlo, the stage manager, suggests that Rosencrantz and Guildenstern should be compressed into one. 'Heaven preserve me from all such curtailments!' answered Wilhelm, 'they de- stroy at once the sense and the effect. What these two persons are and do, it is impossible to represent by one. In such small matters, we discover Shakespeare's greatness. These soft ap- proaches, this smirking and bowing, this assenting, wheedling, flattering, this whisking agility, this wagging of the tail, this allness and emptiness, this legal knavery, this ineptitude and insipidity, — how can they be expressed by a single man ? There ought to be at least a dozen of these people, if they could be had: for it is only in society that they are anything; they are 68 HAMLET society itself, and Shakespeare showed no little wisdom and dis- cernment in bringing in a pair of them.' " — *Goethe. The Gravediggers The Gravediggers are characters interesting from many- viewpoints. They represent the lower stratum of society and so they help to complete the picture of social conditions as presented in the play. They afford relief from the excitement and tension of preceding scenes. They belong to the type of workmen with which we are familiar at the present day. They sing and dally over their work, they argue with each other and discuss topics which they cannot comprehend, but nevertheless with a consid- erable amount of common-sense. They are tinged with socialism and are at enmity with the privileged class. They freely express their views on the legality of Ophelia 's burial in sanctified ground. Hamlet remarks of them, ' ' By the Lord, Horatio, these three years I have taken note of it ; the age is grown so picked, that the toe of the peasant comes so near the heel of the courtier, he galls his kibe. ' ' The First Clown seeks to show his cleverness and ingenuity in words — "How absolute the knave is!" says Hamlet. The gravedigger reasons and philosophizes with Hamlet, the prince of philosophers. The Ghost - I am thy father's spirit. — I. v. 9. "The awful horror excited by the foregoing passage is accomplished by simplicity of expression, and by the uncertainty of the thing described. The description is indirect, and by exhibiting a picture of the effects which an actual view of the real object would necessarily produce in the spectator, it affects us more strongly than by a positive enumeration of the most dreadful circumstances. The imagination left to her own inven- tions, overwhelmed with obscurity, travels far into the regions of * See footnote, p. 33. INTRODUCTION 59 terror, into the abysses of fiery and unfathomable darkness." — *Bichardson. XII. ABSTRACT OP THE PLAY ACT I The king of Denmark dies suddenly at the royal castle of Kronborg, at Elsinore, and almost immediately his widow, Ger- trude, marries the king's brother, Claudius. This hasty and unnatural marriage begets a suspicion in the mind of her son, Hamlet, that his father, the king, has been the victim of foul play. One night, shortly after the king's burial, the sentinels at the royal castle are frightened by the appearance of a ghost, which strongly resembles the dead king. They inform Hamlet, who accompanies them on the next night's watch, encounters the ghost, and learns from it that Claudius, the usurper, had poi- soned the king while he slept, and had circulated the report that he had been stung by a serpent. Hamlet swears vengeance against Claudius and the ghost vanishes. ACT 11 That he may the more easily carry out his designs, Hamlet feigns madness. His assumed madness shows itself first in con- nection with Ophelia, with whom he is in love. He treats her rudely, writes her rambling, meaningless letters, and perplexes her with wild, incoherent conversation. A company of strolling players visit the palace, and Hamlet suggests that they produce a play before the court, through which he hopes to confirm his suspicions of Claudius' guilt. act m The play portrays the murder of a Venetian duke, and the subsequent precipitate marriage of the murderer and his vic- tim's widow. The story closely resembles the case of Claudius * See footnote, p. 32. 70 HAMLET and Gertrude. During the progress of the play Hamlet watches, intently the effect on Claudius. As Hamlet had suspected, Claudius sees the portrayal of his own crime under different form, and hurriedly leaves the company. Hamlet is now thor- oughly convinced of the usurper's guilt, and renews his resolve to wreak Vengeance on him. Gertrude also is much agitated by the purport of the play, and sends for Hamlet that she may reproach him with having offended the king. Hamlet replies in scathing, yet respectful, terms, and convinces his mother that his father met his death at the hands of Claudius. During this interview Hamlet kills Polonius (a courtier), father of Ophelia, whom he detects playing the part of a spy. ACT IV Claudius decides that Hamlet must leave the country, and he directs Rosencrantz and Guildenstern, school companions of Hamlet, to accompany the prince to England. He gives them a letter to the English king, which letter, while pretending to be in the interest of Hamlet's health, contains secret orders for his immediate death. On the voyage Hamlet learns the contents of the letter, and substitutes one of his own which orders the immediate execution of Rosencrantz and Guildenstern on their arrival in England. Shortly after this, Hamlet's boat is attacked by pirates, and in the conflict Hamlet boards the pirates' ship and is carried back to Denmark, while Rosencrantz and Guildenstern escape and proceed to their doom. Hamlet returns to Elsinore just in time for the funeral of Ophelia, who, driven insane by grief over the madness of her lover, and the death of her father, had drowned herself. act v In a paroxysm of grief, Hamlet disputes Laertes' position as chief mourner and a quarrel ensues. Laertes blames Hamlet INTEODUCTION 71 for the death of Ophelia, and the murder of his father, Polonius, and tries to kill him. Claudius takes advantage of this feud to accomplish the death of Hamlet. He advises Laertes to challenge Hamlet to a pre- tended friendly bout at fencing, and by apparent accident, to stab him to death. Laertes accepts the king's suggestion and adds to the treachery by putting poison on the point of his sword. To make doubly sure of Hamlet's death Claudius has poisoned wine placed near Hamlet so that in the heat of the con- flict he will drink it. At the outset of the contest Hamlet shows greater skill than does Laertes, and the queen in toasting him, by mistake drinks the poisoned cup. Laertes wounds Hamlet, but in doing so loses his sword. In the ensuing scuffle weapons are exchanged and Hamlet wounds Laertes with his own poison- tipped foil. The queen dies from the effects of the poisoned wine. Laertes, in dying, confesses the plot against Hamlet; Hamlet stabs the king to death, and then dies himself. XIII. DURATION OF THE PLAY Day 1. — Act I., Sc. i., ii., iii. Day 2. — Act I., Sc. iv., v. There is a considerable interval between Acts I. and II., which has been put down as two months for (1) Hamlet speaks of his father "But two months dead," I. ii. 138, whilst Ophelia says, "Nay, 'tis twice two months," III. ii. 129. This gives an interval of at least two months. Such an interval would give time: 1. For money to be sent to Laertes. ' ' Give him this money and these notes, Reynaldo," II. i. 1. 2. The return of the Ambassadors from Norway. Their departure is mentioned, I. ii. 33-34, and their return, II. ii. 40-41. 72 HAMLET Day 3. — Act II., Sc. i., ii. Day 4. — Act III., Sc. i., ii., iii., iv. Act IV., Sc. i., ii., iii. Day 5.— Act IV., Sc. iv. An interval which it is impossible to estimate. Shakespeare seems to have overlooked the fact that Hamlet's sudden return is irreconcilable with the return of the Ambassadors from England the day after his own return. We have : 1. The return of Hamlet, "sudden and more strange/' for which a week is sufficient if not, indeed, too long. He had sailed two days on the voyage to England and returned immedi- ately and unexpectedly. 2. The return of the Ambassadors from England. They had set out with Hamlet, and had gone to England. Yet they return the day after Hamlet's arrival. 3. The return of Laertes from Paris. 4. The return of Portinbras. We must assign sufficient time for him to have marched to Poland, to have won his victory, and to have returned. Clearly the sudden return of Hamlet cannot be fitted in with. the time required by Laertes, the Ambassadors, and Fortin- bras. Critics differ from the space of a week to the extent of two months. Day 6. — Act IV., Sc. v., vi., vii. Day 7. — Act V., Sc. i., ii. Seasons. — The opening scene cannot have been later than March. " 'Tis bitter cold," I. i. 8. The flowers gathered by Ophelia must have been plucked late in May or early in June. This incident gives the time of the later scenes. HAMLET, PRINCE OF DENMARK Uramaiis persmta?. ^Claudius, King of Denmark. Hamlet, Son to the former King, and Nephew to the present. Horatio, Friend of Hamlet. Polonius, Lord Chamberlain. Laertes, his Son. volttmand, Cornelius, Rosencrantz, yCourtiers. GuiLDENSTERN, OSRIC. Marcellus, \ omcers Bernardo. / u ^ cers - Francisco, a Soldier. Reynaldo, Servant to Polonius. A Captain. Ambassadors. Ghost of Hamlet's Father. Fortinbras, Prince of Norway. Two Clowns, Gravediggers. Gertrude, Queen of Denmark and Mother to Hamlet. Ophelia, Daughter to Polonius. Lords, Ladies, Officers, Soldiers, Players, Sailors, Messengers, and Attendants. Scene: Elsinore. ACT I. Scene I. Elsinore. A Platform before the Castle. Francisco at his post. Enter Bernardo. Bernardo. Who's there? Francisco. Nay, answer me : stand, and un- fold yourself. Bernardo. Long live the king! Francisco. Bernardo? Bernardo. He. Francisco. You come most carefully 1 upon your hour. Bernardo. "lis now struck 2 twelve; get thee to bed, Francisco. Francisco. For this relief much 3 thanks : 'tis bitter cold, And I am sick at heart. Bernardo. Have you had quiet* guard? 73 punctually 2 an anachron- ism 3 many ^undisturbed 74 HAMLET [Act I Francisco. Not a mouse stirring. 10 Bernardo. Well, good night. If you do meet Horatio and Marcellus, The rivals 1 of my watch, bid them make haste. Francisco. I think I hear them. — Stand, ho! Who is there? Enter Horatio and Marcellus. Horatio. Friends to this ground 2 . Marcellus. And liegemen to the Dane. Francisco. Give you good night. Marcellus. O, farewell, honest soldier: Who hath relieved you? Francisco. Bernardo hath my place. Give you good night. [Exit. Marcellus. Holla! Bernardo! Bernardo. Say, what, is Horatio there? Horatio. A piece of him. Bernardo. Welcome, Horatio ; welcome, good Marcellus. 20 Marcellus. What, has this thing appear'd again to-night? Bernardo. I have seen nothing. Marcellus. Horatio says 'tis but our fantasy, 3 And will not let belief take hold of him Touching this dreaded* sight, twice seen o/ 5 us: Therefore I have entreated him along With us to watch the minutes of this night, That if again this apparition come, He may approve 6 our eyes and speak to it. Horatio. Tush, tush, 'twill not appear. Bernardo. Sit down awhile; 30 And let us once again assail your ears, That are so fortified against our story, What we have two nights seen. Horatio. Well, sit we down, And let us hear Bernardo speak of this. Bernardo. Last night of all, When yond same star that's westward from the pole Associates ^country Hmagination ^dreadful 6 prove, verify Scene I] HAMLET 75 Had made his course to illume that part of heaven Where now it burns, Marcellus and myself, The bell then beating 1 one ■ Marcellus. Peace, break thee off; — look, where it comes again! 40 Enter Ghost. Bernardo. In the same figure, like the king that's dead. Marcellus. Thou art a scholar; speak to it, Horatio. Bernardo. Looks it not like the king? mark it, Horatio. Horatio. Most like : it harrows me with fear and wonder. Bernardo. It would be spoke 2 to. . Marcellus. Question it, Horatio. Horatio. What art thou, that usurp'st this time of night, Together with that fair and warlike form In which the majesty of buried Denmark 3 Did so7netimes i march? by heaven, I charge thee, speak! Marcellus. It is offended. . Bernardo. See, it stalks away. 50 Horatio. Stay! speak, speak! I charge thee, speak! [Exit Ghost. Marcellus. 'Tis gone, and will not answer. Bernardo. How now, Horatio! you tremble, and look pale: Is not this something more than fantasy? What think you on'tP Horatio. Before my God, I might 5 not this believe Without the sensible and true avouch 7 Of mine own eyes. Marcellus. Is it not like the king? Horatio. As thou art to thyself : Such was the very armour he had on 60 When he the ambitious Norway 8 combated; l striking 2 spoken 3 king of formerly 5 o/ it 6 could ''warrant 8 king of 76 HAMLET [Act I So frowned he once, when, in an angry park, 1 He smote the sledded Polack on the ice. Tis strange. Marcellus. Thus twice before, and jump 2 at this dead hour, With martial stalk hath he gone by our watch. Horatio. In what particular thought to work I know not; But, in the gross and scope 3 of my opinion, This bodes some strange eruption to our state. Marcellus. Good now, sit down, and tell me, he that knows, 70 Why this same strict and most observant watch So nightly toils the subject of the land, And why such daily cast* of brazen cannon, And foreign mart 5 for implements of war; Why such impress 6 of shipwrights, whose sore task Does not divide 7 the Sunday from the week; What might be toward^ that this sweaty haste Doth make the night joint-labourer with the day: Who is't that can inform me? Horatio. That can I ; At least, the whisper goes so. Our last king, 60 Whose image even but now appear 'd to us, Was, as you know, by Fortinbras of Norway, Thereto spurr'd on by a most emulate 9 pride, Dared 10 to the combat; in which our valiant Hamlet — For so this side of our known world esteem'd him — Did slay this Fortinbras; who, by a seal'd com- pact, Well ratified by law and heraldry, Did forfeit, with his life, all those his lands Which he stood seized of, u to the conqueror: Against the which, a moiety competent 12 Was gaged 13 by our king; which had u returned To the inheritance of Fortinbras, parley 2 just 3 general range lasting ^market ^pressed into service 7 distinguish 8 near at hand 9 envious 10 challenged n possessed of ^sufficient por- tion 13 pledged u would have Scene I] HAMLET 77 Had he been vanquisher; as, by the same cove- nant And carriage of the article design'd, His fell to Hamlet. Now, sir, young Fortinbras, Of unimproved metal 1 hot and full, Hath in the skirts 2 of Norway here and there Shark'd up a list 3 of lawless resolutes* For food and diet, to some enterprise That hath a stomach 5 in't: which is no other 100 — As it doth well appear unto our state — But? to recover of us, by strong hand And terms compulsative, those 'foresaid lands So by his father lost: and this, I take it, Is the main motive of our preparations, The source of this our watch, and the chief head Of this post-haste and romage 1 in the land. Bernardo. I think it be no other but 8 e'en so : Well may it sort, 9 that this portentous figure Comes armed through our watch, so like the king 110 That was, and is, the question 10 of these wars. Horatio. A mote 11 it is to trouble the mind's eye. In the most high and palmy 12 state of Rome, A little ere the mightiest Julius fell, The graves stood tenantless, and the sheeted dead Did squeak and gibber in the Roman streets: As 13 stars with trains of fire and dews of blood, Disasters in the sun; and the moist star, 14 Upon whose influence Neptune's empire stands, 15 Was sick almost to doomsday 15 with eclipse: 120 And even the like precurse 17 of fierce events, As harbingers preceding still 13 the fates, And prologue to the omen 19 coming on, Have heaven and earth together demonstrated Unto our climatures and countrymen. Settle, courage ^borders 3 muster roll tfilibusters 5 stubborn courage Hhan ''stir Hhan ^accord 10 cause u an atom "prosperous u namely u the moon 15 depends 16 death v forewarning 18 constantly 19 calamity 78 HAMLET [Act I Re-enter Ghost. But soft, behold! lo, where it comes again! I'll cross it, though it blast me. — Stay, illusion! If thou hast any sound, or use of voice, Speak to me : If there be any good thing to be done, That may to thee do ease, and grace to me, Speak to me: If thou art privy to thy country's fate, Which, happily, 1 foreknowing 2 may avoid, O, speak! Or if thou hast up-hoarded in thy life Extorted treasure in the womb of earth, For which, they say, you spirits oft walk in death, [Cock crows. stay, and speak! — Stop it, Mar- 130 Shall I strike at it with my Speak of it cellus. Marcellus. partisan? 3 ' 10 Horatio. Do, if it will not stand. Bernardo. 'Tis here! Horatio. 'Tis here! [Exit Ghost. Marcellus. 'Tis gone! We do it wrong, being so majesticalf To offer it the show of violence ; For it is, as the air, invulnerable, And our vain blows malicious mockery. Bernardo. It was about to speak, when the cock crew. Horatio. And then it started like a guilty thing Upon a fearful summons. I have heard, The cock, that is the trumpet to the morn, Doth with his lofty and shrill-sounding throat Awake the god of day; and at his warning, Whether in sea or fire, in earth or air, The extravagant 5 and erring 6 spirit hies To his confine:* and of the truth herein This present object made probation. 8 ^foreknowledge 6 weapon i majestic 6 rovmg e wandering 7 abode 8 proof Scene II] HAMLET 79 Marcellus. It faded on the crowing of the coek. Some say, that ever 'gainst that season comes Wherein our Saviour's birth is celebrated, This bird of dawning 1 singeth all night long: 160 And then, they say, no spirit dares stir abroad; The nights are wholesome; then no planets strike, No fairy takes, 2 nor witch hath power to charm, So hallow'd and so gracious is the time. Horatio. So have I heard, and do in part believe it. But look, the morn, in russet 3 mantle clad, Walks o'er the dew of yon high eastern hill. Break we our watch up; and, by my advice, Let us impart what we have seen to-night Unto young Hamlet; for, upon my life, 170 This spirit, dumb to us, will speak to him: Do you consent we shall acquaint him with it, As needful in our loves, fitting our duty? Marcellus. Let's do't, I pray; and I this morning know Where we shall find him most conveniently. [Exeunt. Scene II. A Room of State in the Castle. Enter the King, Queen, Hamlet, Polonius, Laertes, Voltimand, Cornelius, Lords, and Attendants. King. Though yet of Hamlet our dear brother's death The memory be green, 4 and that it us befitted To bear our hearts in grief, and our whole king- dom To be contracted in one brow of woe; Yet so far hath discretion fought with nature, That we with wisest sorrow think on him, Together with remembrance of ourselves. l cock ^bewitches ^reddish Hresh in our memory 80 HAMLET [Act I Therefore our sometime 1 sister, now our queen, The imperial jointress 2 of this warlike state, Have we, as 'twere with a defeated 3 joy, — 10 With one auspicious,* and one dropping 5 eye, With mirth in funeral, and with dirge 6 in mar- riage, In equal scale weighing delight and dole,' 1 — Taken to wife: nor have we herein barred 9 Your better wisdoms, which have freely gone With this affair along. For all, our thanks. Now follows, that you know, 9 young Fortinbras, Holding a weak supposal 10 of our worth, Or thinking by our late dear brother's death, Our state to be disjoint 11 and out of frame, 20 *Colleagued with the dream of his advantage, He hath not fail'd to pester 12 us with message, Importing 13 the surrender of those lands Lost by his father, with all bonds of law, To our most valiant brother. — So much for him. Now for ourself, and for this time of meeting: Thus much the business is : we have here writ 1 * To Norway, 15 uncle of young Fortinbras, — Who, impotent 15 and bed-rid, scarcely hears Of this his nephew's purpose, — to suppress His further gait 11 herein: in that 18 the levies, The lists, and full proportions 19 , are all made Out of his subject: and we here dispatch You, good Cornelius, and you, Voltimand, For bearers of this greeting to old Norway; Giving to you no further personal power To 20 business with the king, more than the scope Of these dilated 21 articles allow. Farewell, and let your haste commend your duty. Cornelius. \ In that and all things will we Voltimand. } show our duty. 40 King. We doubt it nothing: heartily fare- well. [Exeunt Voltimand and Cornelius. former 2 joint possessor 3 marred tfiappy looking 5 shedding tears Hamentation ''grief 8 excluded 9 already ^estimate ^disjointed 12 annoy ^referring to u written 15 king of ^invalid "progress 1 Hnasmuch as 19 contingents ia for "fully expressed * Co-operated with the idle fancy he entertained of turning the occasion to his advantage. Scene II] HAMLET 81 And now, Laertes, what's the news with you? You told us of some suit; 1 what is't, Laertes? *You cannot speak of reason to the Dane, 2 And lose your voice: 3 what wouldst thou beg, Laertes, That shall not be my offer, not thy asking? The head is not more native to* the heart, The hand more instrumental to the mouth, Than is the throne of Denmark to thy father. What wouldst thou have, Laertes? Laertes. My dread lord, Your leave and favour to return to France ; From whence though willingly I came to Den- mark, To show my duty in your coronation; Yet now, I must confess, that duty done, My thoughts and wishes bend again toward France, And bow them to 5 your gracious leave and pardon. 6 King. Have you your father's leave? What says Polonius? Polonius. He hath, my lord, wrung from me my slow 1 leave By laboursome a petition, and at last Upon his will I sealed my hard 3 consent: I do beseech you, give him leave to go. King. Take thy fair hour, Laertes; time be thine, And thy best graces spend it at thy will ! But now, my cousin 10 Hamlet, and my son, — Hamlet. [Aside] A little more than kin, and less than kind. King. How is it that the clouds still hang on you? Hamlet. Not so, my lord; I am too much i' the sun. 50 60 Request 2 king of Denmark 3 ask in vain Connected tvith ^solicit ^permission ''reluctant Haborious ^obtained with difficulty 10 see Note I. ii. 64 * Speak of any reasonable request to the King of Denmark. 82 HAMLET [Act I Queen. Good Hamlet, cast thy nighted 1 colour off, And let thine eye look like a friend on Denmark. 2 Do not, for ever, with thy vaiUd lids 3 Seek for thy noble father in the dust : Thou know'st 'tis common; all that lives must die, Passing through nature* to eternity. Hamlet. Ay, madam, it is common. Queen. If it be, Why seems it so particular with thee? Hamlet. Seems, madam! Nay, it is; I know not "seems." Tis not alone my inky cloak, good mother, Nor customary suits of solemn black, Nor windy suspiration 5 of forced breath, No, nor the fruitful river 5 in the eye, Nor the dejected haviour" 1 of the visage, Together with all forms, modes, shows of grief, That can denote* me truly. These, indeed, seem, For they are actions that a man might play: But I have that within which passeth show ; These but the trappings and the suits of woe. King. 'Tis sweet and commendable in your nature, Hamlet, To give these mourning duties to your father: But, you must know, your father lost a father; That father lost, lost his; and the survivor bound* In filial obligation, for some term™ To do obsequious 11 sorrow: but to persever In obstinate condolement 12 is a course Of impious stubbornness; 'tis unmanly grief: It shows a will most incorrect to 13 heaven; A heart unfortified, a mind impatient; An understanding simple and unschooled: For what we know must be, and is as common As any the most vulgar 1 * thing to sense^ Why should we, in our peevish opposition, Take it to heart? Fie! 'tis a fault to heaven, 70 80 90 100 tylack *king of s drooping eyes Hife s sighs Hears ^behavior ^describe Hs bound 10 time ^■hnourning 12 sorrow 13 unsubmissive toward u common Scene II] HAMLET 83 A fault against the dead, a fault to 1 nature, To reason most absurd; whose common theme Is death of fathers, and who still 2 hath cried, From the first corse till he that died to-day, "This must be so." We pray you, throw to earth This unprevailing 3 woe; and think of us As of a father : for let the world take note, You are the most immediate* to our throne; And with no less nobility of 5 love 110 Than that which dearest 6 father bears his son, Do I impart toward you. For 1 your intent In going back to school in Wittenberg, It is most retrograde to 8 our desire : And we beseech you, bend you 9 to remain Here, in the cheer and comfort of our eye, Our chiefest courtier, cousin, and our son. Queen. Let not thy mother lose her prayers, Hamlet: I pray thee, stay with us; go not to Wittenberg. Hamlet. I shall 10 in all my best obey you, madam. 120 King. Why, 'tis a loving and a fair reply: Be as ourself in Denmark. — Madam, come; This gentle and unforced accord of Hamlet Sits smiling to 11 my heart: in grace whereof, No jocund health that Denmark 12 drinks to-day, But the great cannon to the clouds shall tell, And the king's rouse 13 the heavens shall bruit u again, Re-speaking 15 earthly thunder. — Come away. [Exeunt all except Hamlet. Hamlet. O, that this too too solid flesh would melt, Thaw, and resolve 15 itself into a dew! 130 Or that the Everlasting had not fix'd His canonp 'gainst self-slaughter! O God! O God! How weary, stale, flat, and unprofitable Seem to me all the uses 18 of this world! Fieon't! O fie! 'tis an unweeded garden, 2 always Unavailing 4 next heir ^ennobling 6 fondest 7 as regards ^opposed to 9 try to induce you l0 will n near 12 king o 13 a bumper u report loudly ^echoing ie melt away 17 law, rule ls cwstoms 84 HAMLET [Act f That grows to seed; things rank and gross in nature Possess it merely. 1 That it should come to this ! But two months dead! — nay, not so much, not two: So excellent a king; that was, to this, Hyperion to 2 a satyr : so loving to my mother, 140 That he might 3 not beteem* the winds of heaven Visit her face too roughly. Heaven and earth! Must I remember? why, she would hang on him, As if increase of appetite had grown By what it fed on: and yet, within a month, — ■Let me not think on't,— 'Frailty, thy name is ~y woman! — A little 5 month, or ere those shoes were old With which she follow'd my poor father's body, Like Niobe, all tears; — why she, even she, — O God! a beast, that wants discourse of reason, 150 Would have mourn'd longer, — married with mine uncle, My father's brother, but no more like my father Than I to Hercules: within a month; Ere yet the salt of most unrighteous 6 tears Had left the flushing in her galttd 7 eyes, She married: — O, most wicked speed! It is not, nor 8 it cannot 8 come to good: But break, my heart, for I must hold my tongue ! Enter Horatio, Marcellus, and Bernardo. Horatio. Hail to your lordship ! Hamlet. I am glad to see you well : Horatio, — or I do forget myself. 160 Horatio. The same, my lord, and your poor 9 servant ever. Hamlet. Sir, my good friend; I'll change 10 that name with you : And what make you from Wittenberg, Horatio? — * Marcellus? Absolutely ^compared to 3 could permit 5 short Hnsincere 1 sore 8 double nega- tive 9 humble ^exchange * What are you doing away from Wittenberg? Scene II] HAMLET 85 Marcellus. My good lord, — Hamlet. I am very glad to see you. [To Ber.] Good even, sir. — But what, in faith, make 1 you from Wittenberg? Horatio. A truant disposition, good my lord. 2 Hamlet. I would not hear your enemy say so, Nor shall you do mine ear that 3 violence To make it truster 4 of your own report Against yourself: I know you are no truant. But what is your affair in Elsinore? We'll teach you to drink deep ere you depart. Horatio. My lord, I came to see your father's funeral. Hamlet. I pray thee, do not mock me, fellow- student; I think it was to see my mother's wedding. Horatio. Indeed, my lord, it follow 'd hard upon. 5 Hamlet. Thrift, thrift, Horatio! the funeral baked-meats Did coldly furnish forth the marriage tables. Would I had met my dearest 6 foe in heaven Ere 7 1 had ever seen that day, 8 Horatio ! — My father! — methinks I see my father. Horatio. Where, my lord? In my mind's eye, Horatio. I saw him once; he was a goodly Hamlet. Horatio. king. Hamlet. all, shall not look upon his like again. He was a man, take him for all in Horatio. night. Hamlet. Horatio. Hamlet. Horatio. while My lord, I think I saw him yester- Saw who? 9 My lord, the king your father. The king my father ! Season 10 your admiration 11 for a 170 180 190 *do 2 my good lord 3 such 4 believer B close after e most bitter ''before ^marriage day *whom ia qualify, control 11 wonder 86 HAMLET [Act I With an attent 1 ear, till I may deliver, 2 Upon the witness of these gentlemen, This marvel to you. Hamlet. For God's love, let me hear. Horatio. Two nights together had these gentlemen, Marcellus and Bernardo, on their watch, In the dead vast 3 and middle of the night, Been thus encounter 'd.* A figure like your father, Armed at point exactly, cap-a~pe, 5 Appears before them, and with solemn march 200 Goes slow 6 and stately by them: thrice he walk'd By their oppress'd and fear-surprised eyes, Within his truncheon's length; whilst they, distill'd 7 Almost to jelly with the act of fear, Stand dumb, and speak not to him. This to me In dreadful 8 secrecy impart they did; And I with them the third night kept the watch: Where, as they had delivered, 9 both in time, Form of the thing, each word made true and good, The apparition comes: I knew your father; 210 These hands are not more like. Hamlet. But where was this? Marcellus. My lord, upon the platform where we watch'd. Hamlet. Did you not speak to it? Horatio. My lord, I did, But answer made it none: yet once, methought, It lifted up its head and did address Itself to motion, like as 10 it would speak: But, even then, 11 the morning cock crew loud; And at the sound it shrunk in haste away, And vanished from our sight. Hamlet. 'Tis very strange. Horatio. As I do live, my honour'd lord, 'tis true; 220 Attentive 2 can relate 3 vastness k met 5 at all points from head to foot ^slowly 7 melted ^awestruck ^related 10 as if n just then Scene II] HAMLET 87 And we did think it writ 1 down in our duty Written To let you know of it. Hamlet. Indeed, indeed, sirs, but this trou- bles me. Hold you the watch to-night? "!• } We do, my lord. Hamlet. Armed, say you? "Z } Armed, my .ord. Hamlet. From top to toe? Bernardo.' } My lord, from head to foot. Hamlet. Then saw you not his face? Horatio. 0, yes, my lord; he wore his beaver up. Hamlet. What, look'd he frowningly? 230 Horatio. A countenance more In sorrow than in anger. Hamlet. Pale, or red? Horatio. Nay, very pale. Hamlet. And fix'd his eyes upon you? Horatio. Most constantly.' 2 2 steadily Hamlet. I would I had been there. Horatio. It would have much amazed you. Hamlet. Very like, 3 Hikely Very like. Stay'd it long? Horatio. While one with moderate haste might tell* a hundred. 4 count Marcellus. } T , Bernardo, j Longer, longer. Horatio. Not when I saw it. Hamlet. His beard was grizzled? 6 no? tgray Horatio. It was, as I have seen it in his life, 240 A sable silver'd. Hamlet. I will watch to-night ; Perchance 'twill walk again. Horatio. I warrant it will. Hamlet. If it assume my noble father's person, gg HAMLET I'll speak to it, though hell itself should gape And bid me hold my peace. I pray you all, If you have hitherto conceal' d this sight, Let it be tenable 1 in your silence still. And whatsoever else shall hap 2 to-night, Give it an understanding, but no tongue: I will requite your loves. So, fare you well: 250 Upon the platform, 'twixt eleven and twelve, I'll visit you. All. Our duty to your honour. Hamlet. Your loves, as mine to you: fare- well. [Exeunt Horatio, Marcellus, and Bernardo. My father's spirit 3 in arms! all is not well; I doubt* some foul play;* would the night were come! Till then sit still, my soul: foul deeds will rise, Though all the earth o'erwhelm them, to men's eyes. [Exit. Scene III. — A Room in Polonius' House. Enter Laertes and Ophelia. Laertes. My necessaries are embark'd: fare- well: And, sister, as 6 the winds give benefit, And convoy 7 is assistant, do not sleep, But let me hear from you. Ophelia. Do you doubt that? Laertes. For Hamlet, and the trifling of his favor, Hold it a fashion* and a toy in blood; 9 A violet in the youth of primy nature, Forward, not permanent, sweet, 10 not lasting, The perfume and suppliance 11 of a minute; No more. Ophelia. No more but so? Laertes. Think it no more: 10 For nature, crescent, 12 does not grow alone [Act I %ept secret 2 happen 3 one syllable Suspect Hreachery ^according as 7 means of con- veyance Changeable 9 fancy 10 two syllables n to fill a place ^growing Scene III] HAMLET 89 In thews and bulk; but as this temple 1 waxes, The inward service of the mind and soul Grows wide withal. Perhaps he loves you now; And now no soil 2 nor cautel 3 doth besmirch 4 The virtue of his will : but you must fear, His greatness weigh'd, his will is not his own; For he himself is subject to his birth: He may not, 1 as unvalued* persons do, Carve 5 for himself ; for on his choice depends 20 The safety 7 and health of this whole state; And therefore must his choice be circumscribed Unto the voice and yielding of that body Whereof he is the head. 8 Then if he say s he loves you, It fits your wisdom so far to believe it As he in his particular act and place *May give his saying deed; which is no further Than the main voice 3 of Denmark goes withal. Then weigh what loss your honour may sustain, If with too credent 10 ear you list 11 his songs, 30 Or lose your heart To his unmaster'd 12 importunity. Fear it, Ophelia, fear it, my dear sister; fAnd keep you in the rear of your affection, Out of the shot and danger of desire. The chariest 13 maid is prodigal enough, If she unmask her beauty to the moon: Virtue itself 'scapes not calumnious strokes; The canker 14 galls the infants of the spring, Too oft before their buttons 15 be disclosed; 16 40 And in the morn and liquid dew of youth Contagious blastments 17 are most imminent. Be wary, then; best 18 safety lies in fear: Youth to itself rebels, though none else near. 19 Ophelia. I shall 20 the effect 21 of this good lesson keep, As watchman to my heart. But, good my brother, x body 2 stain 3 deceit Hefile 5 of no worth e choose 7 three sylla- bles 8 pronounced as if written he's th' head ^public opin- ion 10 believing u listen to 12 unbridled l3 most heedful u worm that preys upon blossoms u buds ^unfolded v blights n (the) best 19 (be) near 20 will 21 th' effect * Is able to carry his words into effect. t "Do not advance as far as your affection would lead you" (Johnson). 90 HAMLET Do not, as some ungracious 1 pastors do, Show me the steep and thorny way to heaven, Whilst, like a puffed 2 and reckless libertine, Himself the primrose path of dalliance treads, 50 And recks 3 not his own rede.* Laertes. O, fear me 5 not. I stay too long : — but here my father comes. Enter Polonius. A double blessing is a double grace; Occasion 6 smiles upon a second leave. Polonius. Yet 7 here, Laertes! Aboard, aboard, for shame! The wind sits in the shoulder of your sail, And you are stay'd for. There, — my blessing with you ! [Laying his hand on Laertes' head. And these few precepts in thy memory Look thou character. 8 Give thy thoughts no tongue, Nor any unproportion'd 3 thought his 10 act. 60 Be thou familiar, but by no means vulgar. 11 The friends thou hast, and* their adoption tried, Grapple them to thy soul with hoops of steel ; But do not dull thy palm with entertainment Of each new-hatch'd, unfledged comrade. Be- ware Of entrance to a quarrel ; but, being in, Bear't, that the opposed 12 may beware of thee. Give every man thine ear, but few thy voice: Take each man's censure, 13 but reserve thy judg- ment. Costly 1 * thy habit as thy purse can buy, 70 But not expressed in fancy; rich, not gaudy: For the apparel oft proclaims the man; And they in France, of the best rank and station, Are most select and generous, chief 15 in that. Neither a borrower, nor a lender be ; [Act I graceless 2 puffed up, self- confident follows Counsel & for me (dative) Opportunity 'still 8 write ^unsuitable 10 its n comnwn 12 tW opposed, opponent 13 opinion u as costly ^particularly * Tried after having adopted them. Scene III] HAMLET 91 For loan oft loses both itself and friend; And borrowing dulls the edge of husbandry. 1 This above all, — to thine own self be true, And it must follow, as the night the day, Thou canst not then be false to any man. 80 Farewell: my blessing season 2 this in thee! Laertes. Most humbly do I take my leave, my lord. Polonius. The time invites 3 you; go, your servants tend. 4 ' Laertes. Farewell, Ophelia; and remember well What I have said to you. Ophelia. 'Tis in my memory lock'd, And you yourself shall keep the key of it. Laertes. Farewell. [Exit Laertes. Polonius. What is't, Ophelia, he hath said to you? Ophelia. So please you, something touching the Lord Hamlet. Polonius. Marry, well bethought : 5 90 'Tis told me, he hath very oft of late 6 Given private time to you; and you yourself Have of your audience been most free and bounteous: If it be so— as so 'tis put 1 on me, And that in way 8 of caution — I must tell you, You do not understand yourself so clearly, As it behoves 9 my daughter, and your honour. What is between you? give me up the truth. Ophelia. He hath, my lord, of late made many tenders 10 Of his affection to me. 100 Polonius. Affection! pooh! you speak like a green 11 girl. Unsifted 12 in such perilous circumstance. Do you believe his tenders, 13 as you call them? Ophelia. I do not know, my lord, what I should think. '■economy 2 ripen 3 summons ^attend Hhought of Recently ''forced 8 (the) way 9 befit& 10 offers ^inexperienced 12 untried 13 offers 92 HAMLET [Act I Polonius. Marry, I'll teach you: think your- self a baby; That you have ta'en these tenders 1 for true pay, Which are not sterling. 2 Tender 3 yourself more dearly; Or, — not to crack the wind of the poor phrase, Running it thus, — you'll tender* me a fool. Ophelia. My lord, he hath importuned me with love, 110 In honourable fashion. 5 Polonius. Ay, fashion 6 you may call it; go to, go to. Ophelia. And hath given countenance to his speech, my lord, With almost all the holy vows of heaven. Polonius. Ay, springes 1 to catch woodcocks. I do know, When the blood burns, how prodigal 3 the soul Lends the tongue vows : *these blazes, daughter, » Giving more light than heat, — extinct in both, Even in 10 their promise, as it is a-making, — You must not take for fire. ll From this time 120 Be somewhat scanter of your maiden presence; Set your entreatments 12 at a higher rate Than a command to parley. For 13 Lord Hamlet, Believe so much in him, that he is young; And with a larger tether 1 * may he walk Than may be given you. In few, 15 Ophelia, Do not believe his vows ; for they are brokers, 16 — Not of that dye 17 which their investments 13 show, But mere implorators 19 of unholy suits, Breathing 20 like sanctified and pious bonds, 130 The better to beguile. This is for 21 all, — I would not, in plain terms, from this time forth, Have you so slander any moment 22 leisure, As to give words or talk with the Lord Hamlet. Look to't, I charge 23 you: come your ways. Ophelia. I shall obey, my lord. [Exeunt. x offers 2 true gold s value Exhibit ^passing fancy 7 nets, gins Havishly 9 daugh-e-ter, trisyllable 10 at the moment "dissyllable 12 favors 13 as for u more liberty 15 in short u go-betweens 11 appearance 13 dress 19 solicitors ^whispering 21 (once) for 22 moment's 23 command *These blazes (fires of passion) are like flashes, giving more light than heat, and which go out even while the promise is being made. Scene IV] HAMLET 93 Scene IV. — The Platform. Enter Hamlet, Horatio, and Marcellus. Hamlet. The air bites shrewdly; 1 it is very keenly cold. Horatio. It is a nipping and an eager 2 air. 2 sharp Hamlet. What hour 3 now? 3 dissy liable Horatio. I think it lacks of twelve. Marcellus. No, it is struck. Horatio. Indeed? I heard it not: it then draws near the season Wherein the spirit held his wont 4 to walk. Custom [A flourish of trumpets, and ordnance shot off, within. What does this mean, my lord? Hamlet. The king doth wake 5 to-night, and b feast late takes his rouse, 6 6 bumper Keeps wassail, 7 and the swaggering wp-spring ''revelry reels; 3 8 dance staggers And, as he drains his draughts of Rhenish 9 down, 10 9 Rhine wine The kettle-drum and trumpet thus bray out The triumph of his pledge. Horatio. Is it a custom? Hamlet. Ay, marry, is't: But to my mind, — though I am native here And to the manner born, — it is a custom More honour'd in the breach than the observance. *This heavy-headed revel, east and west, Makes us traduced 10 and tax'd 11 of other nations: ^disgraced They clepe 12 us drunkards, and with swinish n censured 12 call phrase 13 defile Soil 13 our addition; 14 and, indeed, it takes 20 u title *These drinking habits of ours cause other nations to overlook our good qualities and to regard us as drunkards. So with individuals : some particular trait (vicious mole) — either inherited at birth and therefore no fault of the man, developing (o'ergrowth) some disposition that proves too strong for him, or brought about by some bad habit that outweighs (o'erleavens) his pleasant manners — no matter if inherited (nature's livery) or an acquired habit (fortune's star) — is enough to cause most people to judge the man (general censure) by this particular defect, and to overlook his other qualities (their virtues else), though they be many (infinite) and full of goodness (pure as grace). 94 HAMLET [Act I From our achievements, though perform'd at height, 1 The pith and marrow of our attribute. So, oft it chances in particular men, That, for some vicious mole of nature 2 in them, As, in their birth (wherein they are not guilty, Since nature cannot choose his 3 origin), By the o'ergrowth of some complexion, Oft breaking down the pales* and forts of reason; Or by some habit, that too much o'er-leavens 6 The form of plausive 6 manners; — that these men, — Carrying, I say, the stamp of one defect, Being nature's livery, or fortune's star, — Their virtues else (be they as pure as grace, As infinite as man may undergo, 7 ) Shall* in the general censure take corruption From that particular fault: the dram of base 9 Doth all the noble substance often dout 10 To his 11 own scandal. Enter Ghost. Horatio. Look, my lord, it comes! Hamlet. Angels and ministers of grace, defend us! Be thou a spirit of health, or goblin damn'd, Bring with thee airs from heaven, or blasts from hell, Be thy intents wicked, or charitable, Thou com'st in such a questionable 12 shape, That I will speak to thee: I'll call thee Hamlet, King, Father, Royal Dane: O, answer me! Let me not burst in ignorance; but tell Why thy canonized bones, hearsed 13 in death, Have burst their cerements ; 14 why the sepulchre, Wherein we saw thee quietly inurn , d, lb _ Hath oped 16 his ponderous and marble jaws, To cast thee up again! What may this mean, That thou, dead corse, again, in complete steel, Revisit'st thus the glimpses of the moon, 30 40 50 l at best 2 a mark on the body Hts defences ^affects too strongly pleasing ''accumulate e will ^portion of evil 10 do out, destroy "its 12 inviting ques- tion 13 entombed u wrapping for the dead ^interred ^opened Scene IV] HAMLET 95 Making night hideous; and we 1 fools of nature, So horridly to shake our disposition, 2 With thoughts beyond the reaches of our souls? Say, why is this? wherefore? what should we do? [The Ghost beckons Hamlet. Horatio. It beckons you to go away with it, As if it some impartmenP did desire To you alone. Marcellus. Look, with what courteous action It waves* you to a more removed 5 ground: But do not go with it. Horatio. Hamlet. it. Horatio. Hamlet. No, by no means, It will not speak ; then I will follow Do not, my lord. Why, what should be the fear? I do not set my life at a pin's fee; And, for my soul, what can it do to that, Being a thing immortal as itself? It waves me forth again: — I'll follow it. Horatio. What if it tempt you toward the flood, my lord, Or to the dreadful summit of the cliff That beetles o'er 6 his base into the sea, And there assume some other horrible form, Which might deprive 7 your sovereignty of reason, And draw you into madness? think of it: The very place puts toys 8 of desperation, Without more motive, into every brain That looks so many fathoms to the sea, And hears it roar beneath. Hamlet. It waves me still. — Go on; I'll fol- low thee.. Marcellus. You shall not go, my lord. Hamlet. Hold off your hands. Horatio. Be ruled; you shall not go. Hamlet. My fate cries out, And makes each petty artery in this body 60 1 us 2 nature 'communica- tion Reckons ^remote 70 80 *juts or hangs over 7 take away Hdle fancies 96 HAMLET [Act I As hardy as the Nemean lion's nerve. 1 [Ghost beckons. Still am I call'd: — unhand me, gentlemen; — [Breaking from them. By heaven, I'll make a ghost of him that lets 2 me: — I say, away! — Go on; I'll follow thee. [Exeunt Ghost and Hamlet. Horatio. He waxes 3 desperate with imagina- tion. Marcellus. Let's follow; 'tis not fit thus to obey him. Horatio. Have after. 4 — To what issue will 90 this come? Marcellus. Something is rotten in the state of Denmark. Horatio. Heaven will direct it. 6 Marcellus. Nay, let's follow him. [Exeunt. Scene V. — A more remote Part of the Platform. Re-enter Ghost and Hamlet. Hamlet. Whither wilt thou lead me? speak; I'll go no further. Ghost. Mark me. Hamlet. I will. Ghost. My hour is almost come, When I to sulphurous and tormenting flames Must render* up myself. Hamlet. Alas, poor ghost! Ghost. Pity me not; but lend thy serious hearing To what I shall unfold. Hamlet. Speak; I am bound to hear. Ghost. So art thou to revenge, when thou shalt hear. Hamlet. What? Ghost. I am thy father's spirit, Doom'd for a certain term to walk the night, 10 ^muscle 2 hinders 3 grows follow Hhe issue ^deliver Scene V] HAMLET And, for 1 the day, confined to fast in fires, Till the foul crimes, done in my days of nature, 2 Are burnt and purged away. But that I am forbid 3 To tell* the secrets of my prison-house, I could a tale unfold, whose lightest word Would harrow up thy soul; freeze thy young blood; Make thy two eyes, like stars, start from their spheres; Thy knotted and combined locks to part, And each particular hair to stand on end, Like quills upon the fretful porcupine; 20 But this eternal blazon 5 must not be To ears of flesh and blood. — List, 6 list, list! If thou didst ever thy dear father love — Hamlet. O God! Ghost. Revenge his foul and most unnatural murder. Hamlet. Murder! Ghost. Murder most foul, as in the best 7 it is; But this most foul, strange, and unnatural. Hamlet. Haste me to know 't, 8 that I, with wings as swift As meditation, or the thoughts of love, 30 May sweep to my revenge. Ghost. I find thee apt; 3 And duller shouldst 10 thou be than the fat weed That rots itself in ease on Lethe wharf, 11 Wouldst thou not stir in this. Now, Hamlet, hear: 'Tis given out that, sleeping in mine orchard, A serpent stung me; so the whole ear of Den- mark Is by a forged process 12 of my death Rankly 13 abused: but know, thou noble youth, The serpent that did sting thy father's life Now wears his crown. 40 Huring Hife ^forbidden declare ^revelation of eternity Histen 1 at best Hell me quickly heady 10 wouldst n bank ^account 13 grossly 98 HAMLET [Act I Hamlet. O my prophetic soul ! my uncle ! Ghost. But, soft! 1 methinks I scent the morn- ing air; Brief let me be. — Sleeping within mine orchard, My custom always in the afternoon, Upon my secure 2 hour thy uncle stole, With juice of cursed hebenon 3 in a vial, And in the porches* of mine ears did pour The leperous distilment 5 ; whose effect Holds such an enmity with blood* of man, That, swift as quicksilver, it courses 7 through 50 The natural gates and alleys 8 of the body; And, with a sudden vigour, 9 it doth posset 19 And curd, like eager 11 droppings into milk, The thin and wholesome blood: so did it mine; And a most instant 12 tetter 13 bark'd about, 1 * Most lazar 15 -like, with vile and loathsome crust, All my smooth body. Thus was I, sleeping, by a brother's hand, Of life, of crown, of queen, at once despatch' d: 1 * Cut off even in the blossoms of my sin, 60 UnhouseVd, 17 disappointed, 18 unaneled; 10 No reckoning made, but sent to my account With all my imperfections on my head: O, horrible! O, horrible! most horrible! If thou hast nature 20 in thee, bear it not; But, howsoever thou pursu'st this act, Taint not thy mind, nor let thy soul contrive Against thy mother aught: leave her to heaven, 21 And to those thorns 22 that in her bosom lodge, To prod and sting her. Fare thee well at once! 70 The glow-worm shows the matin 23 to be near, And 'gins 2 * to pale 25 his uneffectual 26 fire : Adieu, adieu! Hamlet, remember me. [Exit. Hamlet. O all you host of heaven! O earth! What else? And shall I couple hell?— 0, fie!— Hold, hold, my heart; And you, my sinews, grow not instant 27 old, But bear me stiffly up. — Remember thee? — ^■hush 'unsuspicious 3 henbane ^entrances ^distillation 9 (the) blood 7 rushes ^passages s rapid action 10 curdle 11 sour 12 instantaneous 13 scab u covered 13 leper ^deprived "without sacrament 18 unprepared 19 without extreme unction 20 natural affection 21 i.e. punish- ment of 22 stings of con- science 23 the morning 2i begins 2b make pale ^ineffectual 27 instantly Scene V] HAMLET 99 Ay, thou poor ghost, while memory holds a seat In this distracted globe. 1 Remember thee! Yea, from the table 2 of my memory I'll wipe away all trivial fond 5 records, All saws* of books, all forms, all pressures 5 past, That youth and observation copied there; And thy commandment all alone shall live Within the book and volume of my brain, Unmix'd with baser matter: yes, by heaven! O most pernicious woman! villain, villain, smiling, damned villain! My tables, 5 — meet it is I set it down, That one may smile, and smile, and be a villain; 90 At least I'm sure it may be so in Denmark: [Writing. So, uncle, there you are? Now to my word; 8 It is, "Adieu, adieu! remember me:" 1 have sworn 't. Horatio. [Within.] My lord! my lord! Marcellus. [Within.] Lord Hamlet! Horatio. [Within.] Heaven secure 9 him ! Marcellus. [Within.] So be it! Horatio. [Within.] Hillo, ho, ho, my lord! Hamlet. Hillo, ho, ho, boy! come, bird, come. Enter Horatio and Marcellus. Marcellus. How is 't, my noble lord? Horatio. What news, my lord? Hamlet. O, wonderful! Horatio. Good my lord, tell it. Hamlet. No; You'll reveal it. 100 Horatio. Not I, my lord, by heaven! Marcellus. Nor I, my lord! Hamlet. How say you, then; would heart of man once think it? — But you'll be secret? Horatio. \ A , , , , Marcellus. J Ay, by heaven, my lord. %ead Hdblet. 3 foolish 4 sayings Hmpressions Hablets 7 i.e. set down ^watchword ^-protect 100 HAMLET [Act I Hamlet. There's ne'er a villain dwelling in all Denmark But he's an arrant 1 knave. Horatio. There needs no ghost, my lord, come 2 from the grave To tell us this. Hamlet. Why, right; you are i' the right; And so, without more circumstance 3 at all, I hold it fit that we shake hands and part: 110 You, as your business and desire shall point you; For every man hath business and desire, Such as it is: — and, for mine own poor part, Look you, I'll go pray. Horatio. These are but wild and whirling* words, my lord. Hamlet. I'm sorry they offend you, heartily; Yes, faith, heartily. Horatio. There's no offence, my lord. Hamlet. Yes, by Saint Patrick, but there is, Horatio, And much offence too. Touching this vision here It is an honest ghost, that let me tell you: 120 For 6 your desire to know what is between us, O'ermaster 6 't as you may. And now, good friends, As you are friends, scholars, and soldiers, 7 Give 3 me one poor request. Horatio. What is't, my lord? we will. Hamlet. Never make known what you have seen to-night. Horatio \ M lord we win not< Marcellus. J J Hamlet. Nay, but swear 't. Horatio. In faith, My lord, not I. Marcellus. Nor I, my lord, in faith. Hamlet. Upon my sword. 9 Marcellus. We have sworn, my lord already. Hamlet. Indeed, upon my sword, indeed. Absolute, thorough 2 (to) come 2 'circumlocution 4 excited B os for 6 get over it trisyllable s grant 9 i.e. this cross Scene V] HAMLET 101 Ghost. [Beneath.] Swear. Hamlet. Ah, ha, boy! say'st thou so? art thou there, truepenny? 1 — Come on — you hear this fellow in the cellarage, 2 — Consent to swear. Horatio. Propose the oath, my lord. Hamlet. Never to speak of this that you have seen, Swear by my sword. Ghost. [Beneath.] Swear. Hamlet. Hie et ubiquef 3 then we'll shif$ our ground. — • Come hither, gentlemen, And lay your hands again upon my sword: Never to speak of this that you have heard, Swear by my sword. Ghost. [Beneath.] Swear. Hamlet. Well said, old mole! canst work 4 ' i' the earth so fast? A worthy pioner 5 — Once more remove, good friends. Horatio. O day and night, but this is won- drous 6 strange ! Hamlet. And therefore as a stranger give it welcome. There are more things in heaven and earth, Horatio, Than are dreamt of in your philosophy. But come ; — Here, as before, never, so help you mercy, How strange or odd soe'er I bear myself, As I, perchance, hereafter shall think meet To put 7 an antic 8 disposition on, — ■ ^ That you, at such times seeing me, never shall, With arms encumbered 9 thus, or this head-shake, Or by pronouncing of some doubtful phrase, As, "Well, well, we know;" — or, "We could, an if 10 wno informa- tion n do not refer to me 12 i.e. what part u play ^company ls await Scene II] HAMLET 137 Hamlet. OGod! your only jig-maker. What should a man do but be merry? for, look you, how cheerfully my mother looks, and my father died within these two hours. 1 Ophelia. Nay, 'tis twice two months, my lord. 130 Hamlet. So long? Nay, then, let the devil wear black, for I'll have a suit of sables. O heavens! die two months ago, and not forgotten yet? Then there's hope a great man's memory may outlive his life half a year: but, by'r 2 lady, he must build churches, then; or else shall he suffer not thinking on, 3 with the hobby-horse, whose epitaph is, "For, O, for, 0, the hobby- horse is forgot." Trumpet sounds. The dumb show enters. Enter a King and a Queen, very lovingly; the Queen embracing him, and he her. She kneels, and makes show of protesta- tion unto him. He takes her up, and declines his head upon her neck: lays him down upon a bank of flowers: she, seeing him asleep, leaves him. Anon comes in a fellow, takes off his crown, kisses it, and pours poison in the King's ears, and exit. The Queen returns, finds the King dead, and makes passionate action. The poisoner, with some two or three mutes, comes in again, seeming to lament with her. The dead body is car- ried away. The poisoner wooes the Queen with gifts: she seems loth and unwilling awhile, but in the end accepts his love. [Exeunt. Ophelia. What means this, my lord? 140 Hamlet. Marry, this is miching mallecho;* it means mischief. Ophelia. Belike 5 this show 6 imports the argument 1 of the play. Hess than two hours ago 2 by our ^oblivion i secret, insidi- ous mischief ^perhaps B dumb show Hheme, subject 138 HAMLET [Act III Enter Prologue. Hamlet. We shall know by this fellow: the players cannot keep counsel; 1 they'll tell all. Ophelia. Will he tell us what this show meant? Prologue. For us and for our tragedy, Here stooping to your clemency, 150 We beg your hearing patiently. [Exit. Hamlet. Is this a prologue, or the posy 2 of a ring? Ophelia. 'Tis brief, my lord. Hamlet. As woman's love. Enter Two Players, King and Queen. P. King. Full thirty times had Phoebus' cart 3 gone round Neptune's salt wash, 4 and Tellus' orbed 5 ground; And thirty dozen moons, with borrowed sheen, 6 About the world have times twelve thirties been; Since love our hearts, and Hymen did our hands, 160 Unite commutual in most sacred bands. P. Queen. So many journeys may the sun and moon Make us again count o'er, ere love be done! 7 But, woe is me, you are so sick of late, So far from cheer, 8 and from your former state, That I distrust 9 you. Yet, though I distrust, Discomfort you, my lord, it nothing 10 must: *For women's fear and love hold quantity; In neither aught, or 11 in extremity. Now, what my love is, proof hath made you 170 know; And as my love is sized, 12 my fear is so: Where love is great, the littlest 13 doubts are fear; Where little fears grow great, great love grows there. P. King. Faith, I must .leave thee, love, and shortly too; x a secret 2 poetical motto 3 chariot of the sun Hhe sea hound night 7 ended ^cheerfulness 9 am solicitous about 10 in no way n nor 12 the size of my love 13 least * "Women's fear and love vary together, are proportionable; they either contain nothing, or what they contain is in extremes" — (Abbott.) Scene II] HAMLET 139 My operant 1 powers their functions leave 2 to do : And thou shalt live 3 in this fair world behind, 3 Honour 'd, beloved; and, haply, one as kind For husband shalt thou ■ P. Queen. 0, confound the rest! Such love must needs be treason in my breast: In second husband let me be accurst! 180 None wed the second but who kill'd the first. Hamlet. [Aside] Wormwood, wormwood. P. Queen. The instances* that second mar- riage move, Are base respects 5 of thrift, 5 but none of love: P. King. I do believe you think what now you speak; *But what we do determine, oft we break. Purpose is but the slave to memory; Of violent birth, but poor validity: 7 Which now, like fruit unripe, sticks on the tree; But fall, unshaken, when they mellow be. Most necessary 9 'tis, that we forget 190 To pay ourselves what to ourselves is debt: 9 What to ourselves in passion we propose, The passion ending, doth the purpose lose, The violence of either grief or joy Their own enactures 10 with 11 themselves destroy: Where joy most revels, grief doth most lament; Grief joys, joy grieves, on slender accident. This world is not for aye; 12 nor 13 'tis not 13 strange, That even our loves should with our fortunes change ; For 'tis a question left us yet to prove, 200 Whether love lead fortune, or else fortune love. The great man down, you mark his favourite flies; The poor advanced makes friends of enemies. And hitherto doth love on fortune tend : For who not needs 1 4 shall never lack 15 a friend; Active 2 cease 3 survive me 4 motive8 Considerations 5 gain ''strength ^unavoidable 9 due ^resolutions n of 12 ever "double neg. u has plenty 15 be without * Resolutions are suddenly formed, but are of little strength, and endure only as long as we remember them. 140 HAMLET ♦And who in want a hollow friend doth try, 1 Directly seasons 2 him his enemy. But, orderly to end where I begun, 3 Our wills and fates do so contrary run, That our devices still* are overthrown; 210 Our thoughts are ours, their ends none of our own: So think thou wilt no second husband wed; But die thy thoughts, when thy first lord is dead. P. Queen. Nor earth to me give food, nor heaven light! Sport and repose lock from me, day and night! To desperation turn my trust and hope! An anchor's 5 cheer 5 in prison be my scope! 7 Each opposite 9 that blanks* the face of joy, Meet what I would have well, and it destroy! Both here and hence, pursue me lasting strife, 220 If, once a widow, ever I be wife! Hamlet If she should break it now! P. King. 'Tis deeply sworn. Sweet, leave me here a while; My spirits grow dull, and fain 10 1 would beguile The tedious day with sleep. [Sleeps. P. Queen. Sleep rock thy brain; And never come mischance between us twain! [Exit. Hamlet. Madam, how like you this play? Queen. The lady doth protest too much, methinks. Hamlet. O, but she'll keep her word. King. Have you heard the argument? 11 Is 230 there no offence in't? Hamlet. No, no, they do but jest, poison in jest; no offence i' the world. King. What do you call the play? Hamlet. The Mouse-trap. Marry, how! Trop- ically. 12 This play is the image 13 of a murder done in Vienna : Gonzago is the duke's name ; his wife, [Act Til Hests hipens 3 began fyver, always b hermit's B food ''highest aim Obstacle a makes pale °gladly n plot of the play 15 '-figuratively 13 likeness * If a needy man test a false friend by asking for assistance he will at once turn him (ripen) into an enemy. Scene II] HAMLET 141 Baptista: you shall see anon; 1 'tis a knavish piece of work: but what of that? Your majesty, and we that have free 2 souls, it touches us not: let 240 the galled jade 3 wince, our withers* are unwrung. 5 Enter Lucianus. This is one Lucianus, nephew to the king. Ophelia. You are as good as a chorus, my lord. Hamlet. *I could interpret between you and your love, 9 if I could see the puppets dallying. Ophelia. Still better, and worse. Hamlet. Begin, murderer: leave thy damnable faces, 7 and begin. Come: the croaking raven 250 doth bellow for revenge. Lucianus. Thoughts black, hands apt, s drugs fit, and time agreeing; Confederate season, else no creature seeing: Thou mixture rank, of midnight weeds collected, With Hecate's 9 ban thrice blasted, thrice in- fected, Thy natural magic and dire property On wholesome 10 life usurp immediately. [Pours the poison into the sleeper's ears. Hamlet. He poisons him i' the garden for his estate. His name's Gonzago: the story is extant, 11 and written in very choice Italian. You 260 shall see anon 12 how the murderer gets the love of Gonzago's wife. Ophelia. The king rises. Hamlet What, frighted with false fire! Queen. How fares my lord? Polonius. Give o'er the play. King. Give me some light: away. All. Lights, lights, lights! [Exeunt all except Hamlet and Horatio. Hn an instant Hnnocent 3 sore-backed horse 4 shoulders 6 sound Hover ''cease looking round heady 9 a dissyllable ^healthy n true immediately * Like the interpreter of the puppet show, I could put words into the mouths of yourself and your lover, if I saw the dolls working. 142 HAMLET [Act III Hamlet. Why, let the stricken deer 1 go weep, The hart 2 ungalUd 3 play; 270 For some must watch,* while some must sleep : So runs the world away. Would not this, sir,and a forest of feathers, (if the rest of my fortunes turn Turk 5 with me), with two Provincial roses 6 on my razed 7 shoes, get me a fellowship in a cry 9 of players, sir? Horatio. Half a share. Hamlet. A whole one, I. For thou dost know, O Damon dear, This realm dismantled was 280 Of Jove himself; 9 and now reigns here A very, very — Peacock. 10 Horatio. You might have rhymed. Hamlet. O good Horatio, I'll take the ghost's word for a thousand pound. Didst perceive? Horatio. Very well, my lord. Hamlet. Upon the talk of the poisoning, — Horatio. I did very well note him. Hamlet. Ah, ha! — Come, some music! come, the recorders! 11 290 For if the king like not the comedy, Why, then, belike, he likes it not perdy. 12 Come, some music! Re-enter Rosencrantk and Guildenstern. Guildenstern. Good my lord, vouchsafe me 13 a word with you. Hamlet. Sir, a whole history. Guildenstern. The king, sir, — Hamlet. Ay, sir, what of him? Guildenstern. Is, in his retirement, marvel- lous 1 * distempered. 16 300 Hamlet. With drink, sir? Guildenstern. No, my lord, rather with choler. 16 Claudius 2 Hamlet 3 uninjured l keep awake ^change for the worse hosettes ''slashed ^company ^Hamlet's father 10 Claudiu8 n flageolets 12 par Dieu (by God) 13 dative u marvelously u out of sorts danger Scene II] HAMLET 143 Hamlet. Your wisdom should 1 show itself more richer, 2 to signify this to his doctor; for, for me to put him to his purgation, would perhaps plunge him into far more choler. Guildenstern. Good my lord, put your dis- course into some frame, 3 and start not so wildly from my affair. 310 Hamlet. I am tame, sir: pronounce. Guildenstern. The queen, your mother, in most great affliction of spirit, hath sent me to you. Hamlet. You are welcome. Guildenstern. Nay, good my lord, this cour- tesy is not of the right breed. If it shall please you to make me a wholesome* answer, I will do your mother's commandment : if not, your par- don and my return shall be the end of my busi- 320 ness. Hamlet. Sir, I cannot. Guildenstern. What, my lord? Hamlet. Make you a wholesome 5 answer; my wit's diseased: 6 but, sir, such answer as I can make, you shall command; or, rather, as you say, my mother : therefore no more, but to the matter: my mother, you say, — Rosencrantz. Then, thus she says: your behaviour hath struck her into amazement 7 and 330 admiration. 9 Hamlet. O wonderful son, that can so aston- ish a mother! — But is there no sequel 9 at the heels of this mother's admiration? Impart. Rosencrantz. She desires to speak with you in her closet, 10 ere you go to bed. Hamlet. We shall obey, were she ten times our mother. Have you any further trade 11 with us? Rosencrantz. My lord, you once did love me. 340 Hamlet. So I do still, by these pickers and stealers. 12 2 double com- parative 3 order Sensible ^sensible 6 a play on words 7 perturbation ^astonishment ^consequence 10 private room ll business u hands. See Note III. ii. 341 • 144 HAMLET Rosencrantz. Good my lord, what is your cause of 1 distemper? You do, surely, bar the door upon your own liberty, if you deny your griefs to your friend. Hamlet. Sir, I lack advancement. Rosencrantz. How can that be, when you have the voice 2 of the king himself for your suc- cession in Denmark? 350 Hamlet. Ay, sir, but "While the grass grows" — the proverb is something musty. 3 Re-enter the Players, with recorders. O, the recorders! let me see one. — To withdraw* with you: — why do you go about to recover the wind of me, as if you would drive me into a toil? 5 Guildenstern. O, my lord, if my duty be too bold, my love is too unmannerly. Hamlet. I do not well understand that. Will you play upon this pipe?* Guildenstern. My lord, I cannot. 360 Hamlet. I pray you. Guildenstern. Believe me, I cannot. Hamlet. I do beseech you. Guildenstern. I know no touch of it, my lord. Hamlet. 'Tis as easy as lying: govern these ventages 1 with your finger and thumb, give it breath with your mouth, and it will discourse most eloquent music. Look you, these are the stops. Guildenstern. But these cannot I command 370 to any utterance of harmony; I have not the skill. Hamlet. Why, look you now, how unworthy a thing you make of me ! You would play upon me; you would seem to know my stops; you would pluck out the heart of my mystery; you would sound me from my lowest note to the top of my compass: and there is much music, excel- lent voice, in this little organ; 8 yet cannot you make it speak. 'Sblood, do you think I am 380 [Act II] 1 cause of your 2 promise s stale 4 siep aside 6 net e flageolet 7 air-holes Hnstrument Scene II] HAMLET 145 easier to be played on than a pipe? Call me what instrument you will, though you can fret 1 me, you cannot play upon me. Enter Polonius. God bless you, sir. Polonius. My lord, the queen would speak with you, and presently. 2 Hamlet. Do you see yonder cloud that's almost in shape of a camel? Polonius. By the mass, and 'tis a camel, in- ' i deed. Hamlet. Polonius. Hamlet. Polonius. 1 Hamlet. 390 Methinks it is like a weasel. It is backed like 3 a weasel. Or, like a whale? Very like a whale. Then I will come to my mother by and by.* — They fool* me to the top 6 of my bent. 7 — I will come by and by. Polonius. I will say so. [Exit. Hamlet. "By and by" is easily said. Leave me, friends. 400 [Exeunt Rosencrantz , Guildenster,n, Hora- tio and Players. 'Tis now the very vritching time of night, 9 When churchyards yawn, 9 and hell itself breathes out Contagion 10 to this world : now could I drink hot blood, And do such bitter business 11 as the day Would quake to look on. Soft! now to my mother. heart, lose not thy nature; 12 let not ever The soul of Nero enter this firm bosom : Let me be cruel, not unnatural: 1 will speak daggers 13 to her, but use none; My tongue and soul in this be hypocrites; 410 How in my words soever she be shent, 11 To give them seals 15 never, my soul, consent! [Exit. annoy Hmmediately hhaped like the back of 4 at once Hndulge ^height ''inclination ^midnight "open wide 10 pestilence n deeds of bitter cruelty 12 natural affection 13 cutting words Reproached is fulfil 146 HAMLET [Act III Scene III. — A Room in the Castle. Enter King, Rosencrantz, and Guildenstern. King. I like him not; nor stands it safe with us To let his madness range. Therefore prepare you; I your commission will forthwith despatch, And he to England shall along 1 with you: The terms of our estate 2 may not endure Hazard so near us as doth hourly grow Out of his lunacies. Guildenstern. We will ourselves provide; 3 Most holy and religious fear it is, To keep those many many bodies safe, That live, and feed, upon your majesty. Rosencrantz. The single and peculiar life is bound, With all the strength and armour of the mind, To keep itself from 'noyance;* but much more That spirit upon whose weal depend and rest The lives of many. The cease 5 of majesty 6 Dies not alone; but, like a gulf, 7 doth draw What's near in with it: it is a massy 8 wheel, Fix'd on the summit of the highest mount, To whose huge spokes ten thousand lesser things Are mortised and adjoin'd ; which, 3 when it falls 20 Each small annexment, petty consequence, Attends the boisterous ruin. Never alone Did the king sigh, but with a general groan. King. Arm you, 10 I pray you, to 10 this speedy 11 voyage; For we will fetters put upon this fear, Which now goes too free-footed. 12 Rosencrantz. \ ttt m , , . Guildenstern. } Wewillh ™ teus - [Exeunt Rosencrantz and Guildenstern. 1 (go) along ^position as king 3 get ready Annoyance, injury ^decease 6 of a king ''whirlpool 8 massive 9 o/ which ^prepare for 1 Hmmediate 12 unrestrained Scene III] HAMLET 147 Enter Polonius. Polonius. My lord, he's going to his mother's closet: 1 Behind the arras 2 I'll convey myself, To hear the process; 3 I'll warrant she'll tax him home: 30 And, as you said, and wisely was it said, 'Tis meet that some more audience than a mother, Since nature makes them 4 partial, should o'er- hear The speech, of 5 vantage. 6 Fare you well, my liege : I'll call upon you ere you go to bed, And tell you what I know. King. Thanks, dear my lord. [Exit Polonius. O, my offence is rank, it smells to heaven; It hath the primal eldest curse upon't, A brother's murder! Pray, can I not, Though inclination be as sharp as will : 40 My stronger guilt defeats my strong intent; 7 And, like a man to double business bound, I stand in pause 8 where I shall first begin, And both neglect. What if 9 this cursed hand Were thicker than itself with brother's blood, Is there not rain enough in the sweet heavens To wash itwhite as snow ? Whereto serves 10 mercy ^^-*BuTto confront the visage of offence? 1 fAnd what's in prayer but this two-fold force, To be forestalled 11 ere we come to fall, 50 Or pardon'd, being down? Then I'll look up; My fault is past. But, O, what form of prayer Can serve my turn? "Forgive me my foul murder?" That cannot be; since I am still possess'd private room Hapestry ^account Mothers 5 from ^advantage Hntention ^hesitating 9 even suppos- ing that 10 of what avail is ^anticipated * To meet sin face to face and to overcome it. t The two occasions of prayer: (1) before the sin, i. e., "Lead us not into temptation;" (2) after sinning — a prayer for pardon. 148 HAMLET [Act III Of those effects 1 for which I did the murder, My crown, mine own ambition, and my queen. May one be pardon'd, and retain the offence? 2 In the corrupted currents of this world ♦Offence's gilded hand may shove by justice, And oft 'tis seen, the wicked 3 prize itself 60 Buys out the law: but 'tis not so above; There is no shuffling, there the action lies In his* true nature; and we ourselves compelVd, 5 fEven to the teeth and forehead of our faults, To give in evidence. What then? what rests? 6 Try what repentance can: what can it not? Yet what can it, when one cannot repent? O wretched state! O bosom, black as death! O limed 7 soul, that, struggling to be free, Art more engaged! 8 Help, angels! make assay: 3 70 Bow, stubborn knees; and, heart, with strings of steel, Be soft as sinews of the new-born babe! All may be well. [Retires and kneels. Enter Hamlet. Hamlet. Now might I do it pat, now 10 he is praying; And now I'll do't: — and so he goes to heaven; And so am I revenged: — that would 11 be scann'd 12 : — A villain kills my father; and, for that, I, his sole son, do this same villain send To heaven. O, this is hire and salary, not revenge. 80 JHe took my father grossly, full of bread; With all his crimes broad blown, as flush 13 as May: And how his audit 1 * stands, who knows, save heaven? Advantages 2 what was gained by the offence 3 obtained by wickedness Hts 6 (are) com- pelled 'remains ''captured 8 bound ^attempt 10 while n must 12 inquired into 13 full blown u final account * A wealthy offender may bribe the judge {buys out the law) and thus put justice aside, for often the prize gained by the crime (wicked prize) ia so valuable as to be worth a considerable expenditure in bribes. t Straight in the face of our offences; there can be no evasion. JHe murdered my father in the midst of indulgence, unpurified by fasting, and with sins unrepented. Scene IV] HAMLET 149 But, in our circumstance and course of thought, 'Tis heavy 1 with him: *and am I, then, revenged, To take 2 him in 3 the purging of his soul, When he is fit and season'd i for his passage? 5 No! Up, sword; and know thou a more horrid hent: 6 When he is drunk, asleep, or in his rage; 90 At gaming, swearing; or about some act That has no relish of salvation in't; Then trip him, 7 that his heels may kick at heaven, And that his soul may be as damn'd and black As hell, whereto it goes. My mother stays: 8 This physic but prolongs thy sickly days. [Exit The King rises and advances. King. fMy words fly up, my thoughts remain below: Words without thoughts never to heaven go. [Exit. Scene IV. — The Queen's Room. Enter Queen and Polonius. Polonius. He will come straight. 9 Look, you lay home to him: Tell him his pranks have been too broad 10 to bear with, And that your grace hath screened and stood between Much heat 11 and him. I'll silence me e'en 12 here. Pray you, be round 13 with him. Hamlet. [Within.] Mother, mother, mother! Queen. I'll warrant you; Fear me not: — withdraw, I hear him coming. [Polonius hides behind the arras. 1 a heavy reckoning hoere I to take Hn the act of prepared H.e.from life to death Opportunity Hrip him up 8 is waiting ^immediately 10 free ^king's anger 12 even 13 outspoken * The fact that I found you at prayer saves your life for a time. 1 1 pray to heaven for pardon, whilst my thoughts are how to compass Hamlet's death. Prayers that are not the expression of the soul's desire can never reach heaven. 150 HAMLET [Act III Enter Hamlet. Hamlet. Now, mother, what's the matter? Queen. Hamlet, thou hast thy father much offended. Hamlet. Mother, you have my father much offended. 10 Queen. Come, come, you answer with an idle 1 tongue. Hamlet. Go, go, you question with a wicked tongue. Queen. Why, how now, Hamlet! Hamlet. What's the matter now? Queen. Have you forgot me? Hamlet. No, by the rood, 2 not so: You are the queen, your husband's brother's wife : And — would it were not so ! — you are my mother. Queen. Nay, then, I'll set those to you that can speak. Hamlet. Come, come, and sit you down; you shall not budge; 3 You go not, till I set you up a glass 4 Where you may see the inmost part of you. 20 Queen. What wilt thou do? thou wilt not murder me? Help, help, ho! Polonius. [Behind.] What, ho! help! help! help! Hamlet. How now! a rat? 6 [Draws] Dead, for a ducat, dead! [Makes a pass through the arras. Polonius. [Behind] O, I am slain! [Falls and dies. Queen. me, what hast thou done? Hamlet. Nay, I know not: is it the king? [Lifts up the arras, and draws forth Polonius. Queen. O, what a rash and bloody deed is this! Hamlet. A bloody deed! almost as bad, good mother, foolish z Holy Cross s stir hnirror b spy Scene IV] HAMLET 151 As kill a king, and marry with his brother. Queen. As kill a king? Hamlet. Ay, lady, 'twas my word. 30 [To Polonius.] Thou wretched, rash, intruding fool, farewell! I took thee for thy better: 1 take thy fortune; Thou find'st to be too busy 2 is some danger. 3 — Leave* wringing of your hands: peace! sit you down, And let me wring your heart: for so I shall, If it be made of penetrable stuff; If damned custom have not braz'd it so, That it is proof and bulwark against sense. 5 Queen. What have I done, that thou darest wag thy tongue In noise so rude against me? Hamlet. Such an act, 40 That blurs the grace and blush of modesty; Calls virtue, hypocrite; takes off the rose From the fair forehead of an innocent 6 love, And sets a blister there; makes marriage vows As false as dicers'"' oaths: O, such a deed, As from the body of contraction* plucks The very soul, and sweet religion makes A rhapsody of words : *heaven's face doth glow; 9 Yea, this solidity and compound mass, 10 With tristful visage, as against 11 the doom, 12 50 Is thought-sick at the act. 13 Queen. Ah me, what act 1 * That roars so loud, and thunders in the index? 15 Hamlet. Look here, upon this picture, and on this, The counterfeit presentment 16 of two brothers, See, what a grace was seated on this brow; Hyperion's curls; the front of Jove himself; An eye like Mars, to threaten and command; A station 17 like the herald Mercury, New-lighted 1 * on a heaven-kissing 19 hill; Hhe king 2 officious 3 dangerous 'cease Reeling 6 two syllables ''gamblers' ^marriage con- tract 9 blush 10 the earth n before 12 doomsday 13 deed u play or drama ^prologue 16 picture "attitude 18 just alighted "lofty * Heaven blushes at you; yea, the solid mass of earth, with sorrowful appearance, if before the day of judgment, is sick with anxiety. 152 HAMLET [Act in A combination, and a form, indeed, 60 Where every god did seem to set his seal, To give the world assurance of a man: This was your husband. Look you now, what follows : Here is your husband; like a mildew'd ear, Blasting his wholesome 1 brother. Have you eyes? Could you on this fair mountain leave 2 to feed, And batten 3 on this moor? Ha! have you eyes? You cannot call it love; for, at your age, The hey-day* in the blood is tame, it's humble, And waits upon the judgment: and what judg- ment ts Would step from this to this? *Sense, sure, you have, Else could you not have motion: 5 but, sure, that sense Is apoplex'd: 6 for madness would not err; Nor 7 sense to ecstasy 3 was ne'er 7 so thralled 9 But it reserved some quantity 10 of choice, To serve in such a difference. What devil was't That thus hath cozen'd 11 you at hoodman-blind? 12 Eyes without feeling, feeling without sight, Ears without hands or eyes, smelling sans 13 all, fOr but a sickly part of one true sense 80 Could not so mope 1 * O shame! where is thy blush? Rebellious hell, If thou canst mutine 15 in a matron's bones, To naming youth let virtue be as wax, And melt in her own fire: proclaim no shame When the compulsive ardour gives the charge, Since frost itself as actively doth burn, And reason panders will. Wealthy 2 cease 3 grow fat tpassion ^emotion ^affected with apoplexy 7 double neg. s madness ^enslaved 10 portion n cheated 12 blind man's buff 13 without u be so stupid ^mutiny two syllables * You must have the power of feeling, or you could not have emotion; but your senses must be paralyzed: for a madman would not make such a mistake; for his senses are never so much the slave of his madness as not to retain some power of choice, so as to distinguish a contrast so marked as in these two pictures. t If any one of your senses had even the slightest portion remaining. Scene IV] HAMLET 153 Queen. O Hamlet, speak no more. Thou turn'st mine eyes into my very soul ; And there I see such black and grained 1 spots As will not leave their tinct. 2 Hamlet. Nay, but to live 'Stewed in corruption, honeying and making love Over the nasty sty, — Queen. 0, speak to me no more; These words, like daggers, enter in 3 mine ears; No more, sweet Hamlet! Hamlet. A murderer and a villain; A slave, that is not twentieth part the tithe* Of your precedent 5 lord: a Vice 6 of kings; A cutpurse 1 of the empire and the rule, That from a shelf the precious diadem stole, And put it in his pocket! Queen. No more! Hamlet. A king of shreds and patches, — Enter Ghost. Save me, and hover o'er me with your wings, You heavenly guards! — What would your gra- cious figure? Queen. Alas, he's mad! Hamlet. Do you not come your tardy s son to chide, That, lapsed in time and passion, lets go by The important^ acting™ of your dread command? O, say! Ghost. Do not forget : this visitation 11 Is but to whet 12 thy almost blunted purpose. But, look, amazement 13 on thy mother sits: O, step between her and her fighting soul; Conceit 1 * in weakest bodies strongest works: Speak to her, Hamlet. Hamlet. How is it with you, lady? Queen. Alas, how is 't with you, That you do bend your eye on vacancy, 90 100 110 x dyed in grain 2 dye, color Hnto Henth ^former 6 clown Hhief ^dilatory ^urgent ^performance n visit 12 sharpen 13 perturbation imagination or conscience *Who, given up to delay and sentiment, neglects to obey your awful command, which calls for instant action. 154 HAMLET [Act Til And with the incorporal 1 air do hold discourse? Forth at your eyes your spirits wildly peep; And, as the sleeping soldiers in the alarm, *Your bedded? hair, like life in excrements, 3 Starts up, and stands on end. O gentle son, Upon the heat and flame of thy distemper* Sprinkle cool patience. Whereon do you look? Hamlet. On him, on him! Look you, how pale he glares! |His form and cause conjoin'd, preaching to stones, Would make them capable. 6 — Do not look upon me, JLest with this piteous action you convert My stern effects: then, what have I to do Will want true colour; tears, perchance, for blood. Queen. To whom do you speak this? Hamlet. Do you see nothing there? Queen. Nothing at all; yet all that is I see. Hamlet. Nor did you nothing hear? Queen. No, nothing but ourselves. Hamlet. Why look you there! look, how it steals away! 6 My father, in his habit as 1 he lived! Look, where he goes, even now, out at the portal! 9 [Exit Ghost. Queen. This is the very coinage 9 of your brain: This bodiless creation ecstasy i0 Is very cunning in. Hamlet. Ecstasy! My pulse, as yours, doth temperately keep time, And makes as healthful music ; it is not madness 120 130 Hncorporeal or immaterial Hying flat ^excrescences ^disorder B sc. of feeling ^gradually vanishes 7 as when 8 door Hnvention 10 madness * Your hair, lying flat, starts up and stands on end, as if life were suddenly infused into a mere excretion. f His appearance, together with the cause of it, would put some sense and feeling even into stones. X Lest by your appeal for pity you turn me away from the accomplishment of my stern resolve. Scene IV] HAMLET 155 That I have utter'd: bring me to the test, 140 And I the matter will re-word; 1 which madness Would gambol 2 from. Mother, for love of grace, Lay not that nattering unction to your soul, That not your trespass but my madness speaks : It will but skin and film the ulcerous place, Whilst rank corruption, mining all within, Infects unseen. 3 Confess yourself to heaven: Repent what's past; avoid what is to come;* And do not spread the compost 5 on the weeds, To make them ranker. 6 Forgive me this my virtue; 150 For in the fatness of these pursy' 7 times Virtue itself of Vice must pardon beg, Yea, curb and woo, 8 for leave* to do him good. Queen. O Hamlet, thou hast cleft my heart in twain. Hamlet. 0, throw away the worser 10 part of it. And live the purer with the other half. Good night : Assume a virtue, if you have it not. That monster, Custom, who all sense doth eat, Of habits devil, is angel yet in this, 160 That to the use of actions fair and good He likewise gives a frock, or livery, That aptly is put on. For use almost can change the stamp of nature, *And master the devil, or throw him out With wondrous potency. Once more, good night ; And when you are desirous to be blessed, I'll blessing beg of you. — For this same lord, [Pointing to Polonius. I do repent : but heaven hath pleased it so, fTo punish me with this, and this with me, 170 That I must be their 11 scourge and minister. 12 I will bestow 13 him, and will answer 1 * well The death I gave him. So, again, good night. l repeat in the same words 2 skip away ^corrupts or festers future sin ^manure 6 of stronger growth 7 short-winded s bow and beg "permission "double com- parative n of heaven ^servant 13 stow away ^account for * Either master the devil once for all, or beat back his attacks, t To punish me (Hamlet) by causing me to kill Polonius, and to punish him by making me the instrument of his death. 156 HAMLET [Act III I must be cruel, only to be kind: Thus bad begins, and worse remains behind. One word 1 more, good lady. Queen. What shall I do? Hamlet. Not this, by no means, that I bid you do : Let the bloat 2 king tempt you, Make you to ravel 3 all this matter out, That I essentially am not in madness, 180 But mad in craft. 'Twere good,* you let him know: For who, that's but a queen, fair, sober, wise, Would from a paddock, 5 from a bat, a gib, 6 Such dear concernings 7 hide? who would do so? No, in despite of sense and secrecy, Unpeg 8 the basket on the house's top, Let the birds fly, and, like the famous ape, To try conclusions, 9 in the basket creep, And break your own neck down. Queen. Be thou assured, if words be made of breath, 190 And breath of life, I have no life to breathe What thou hast said to me. Hamlet. I must to 1 ° England ; you know that? Queen. Alack, I had forgot: 11 'tis so concluded on 12 Hamlet. There's letters sealed: and my two school-fellows, — Whom I will trust as I will adders fang'd, — They bear the mandate; they must sweep my way, And marshal 13 me to knavery. Let it work; For 'tis the sport, 1 * to have the enginer Hoist with his own petard: 16 and 't shall go hard 200 But I will delve 16 one yard below their mines, And blow them at 17 the moon : O, 'tis most sweet, *When in one line two crafts directly meet. Mother, good night. Indeed, this counsellor 'dissy liable 2 bloated ^disentangle "well Hoad 6 old tomcat 7 concerns 8 unfasten Hhe result '(go) to ll j 'or gotten 12 decided 13 lead ^policy 16 mortar u dig 17 wp to * When two crafty persons meet in direct collision. Scene I] HAMLET 157 Is now most still, most secret, and most grave, Who was in life a foolish prating 1 knave. Come, sir, to draw toward an end 2 with you. Good night, mother. [Exeunt severally, Hamlet dragging the body of Polonius. ACT IV Scene I. — The same. Enter King, Queen, Rosencrantz, and GUILDENSTERN. King. There's matter in these sighs, these profound heaves : You must translate: 3 'tis fit we understand them : Where is your son? Queen. [To Rosencrantz and Guildenstern] Bestow this place on us* a little while. [Exeunt Rosencrantz and Guildenstern. Ah, my good lord, what have I seen to-night! King. What, Gertrude? How does Hamlet? Queen. Mad as the sea and wind, when both contend Which 6 is the mightier: in his lawless fit, Behind the arras 6 hearing something stir, Whips out his rapier, cries "A rat, a rat!" And, in his brainish apprehension, 1 kills The unseen good old man. King. O heavy 8 deed! It had been so with us, had we been there : His liberty 9 is full of threats 10 to all; To you yourself, to us, to every one. Alas, how shall this bloody deed be answer'd? It will be laid to us, whose providence 11 Should have kept short, 1 * restrain'd, and out of haunt, This mad young man: but so much was our love, 10 Shattering Ho finish off a explain their meaning Heave us alone s as to which Hapestry 7 imagmary fear ^sorrowful 9 being at large 10 danger ll foresight ^controlled 158 HAMLET We would not understand what was most fit; 20 But, like the owner of a foul disease, To keep it from divulging, 1 let it feed Even on the pith of life. 2 Where is he gone? Queen. To draw apart 3 the body he hath kill'd: O'er whom his very madness, *like some ore Among a mineral of metals base, Shows itself pure; he weeps for what is done. King. O Gertrude, come away! The sun no sooner shall the mountains touch* But we will ship him hence: and this vile deed 30 We must, with all our majesty and skill, Both countenance 5 and excuse. — Ho, Guilden- stern ! [Re-enter Rosencrantz and Guildenstern. Friends both, go join you with some further aid: 5 Hamlet in madness hath Polonius slain, And from his mother's closet hath he dragg'd him: Go seek him out; speak fair, 1 and bring the body Into the chapel. I pray you, haste in this. [Exeunt Rosencrantz and Guildenstern. Come, Gertrude, we'll call up 8 our wisest friends ; And let them know, both what we mean to do, And what's untimely 9 done: so, haply, slander, 40 Whose whisper o'er the world's diameter, As level 10 as the cannon to his blank 11 Transports his poison'd shot, may miss our name, And hit the woundless 12 air. — O, come away! My soul is full of discord and dismay. [Exeunt. [Act IV Revealing itself Hital parts 3 put away 4 i.e. at dawn ^support ^assistance ''gently ^summon ^unfortunately 10 direct 11 its mark 12 invulnerable Like a vein of precious metal in a mine (or mass of) common metals. Scene II] HAMLET 159 Scene II. — Another Room in the Castle. Enter Hamlet. Hamlet. Safely stowed. 1 GuZ17ern\ [Within] Hamlet! Lord Hamlet! Hamlet. What noise? Who calls on Hamlet? 01 here they come. [Enter Rosencrantz and Guildenstern. Rosencrantz. What have you done, my lord, with the dead body? Hamlet. Compounded 2 it with dust, whereto 'tis kin. Rosencrantz. Tell us where 'tis : that we may take it thence, And bear it to the chapel. Hamlet. Do not believe it. Rosencrantz. Believe what? 10 Hamlet. That I can keep your counsel, 3 and not mine own. Besides, to be demanded of* a sponge! — what replication 5 should be made by the son of a king? Rosencrantz. Take you me for a sponge, my lord? Hamlet. Ay, sir; that soaks up the king's countenance, 6 his rewards, his authorities.'' But such officers do the king best service in the end: he keeps them, like an ape doth nuts, in tne cor- 20 ner of his jaw; first mouthed, to be last swal- lowed: when he needs what you have gleaned, it is but squeezing you, and, sponge, you shall be dry again. Rosencrantz. I understand you not, my lord. Hamlet. I am glad of it: a knavish speech sleeps in a foolish ear. Rosencrantz. My lord, you must tell us where the body is, and go with us to the king. Hamlet. The body is with the king, but the 30 king is not with the body. The king is a thing — l i.e. away ^mingled ^secret ^questioned by 6 reply e favor ^offices of authority 160 HAMLET [Act IV Guildenstern. A thing, my lord! Hamlet. Of nothing: 1 bring me to him. Hide fox, and all after. [Exeunt. Scene III. — Another Room in the Castle. Enter King, attended. King. I have sent to seek him, 2 and to find the body. How dangerous is it, that this man goes loose! 3 Yet must not we put the strong law on him : He's loved of the distracted i multitude, Who like not in their judgment, but their eyes; *And where 'tis so, the offender's scourge is weigh'd, But never the offence. To bear all smooth and even, This sudden sending him away must seem Deliberate pause. 5 fDiseases, desperate grown, By desperate appliance are relieved, Or not at all. Enter Rosencrantz. How now! what hath befall'n? Rosencrantz. Where the dead body is be- stow'd, 6 my lord, We cannot get from him. King. But where is he? Rosencrantz. Without, my lord; guarded, to know your pleasure. King. Bring him before us. Rosencrantz. Ho, Guildenstern! bring in my lord. Enter Hamlet and Guildenstern. King. Now, Hamlet, where's Polonius? Hamlet. At supper. King. At supper! Where? 10 ^no value ^Hamlet 3 free, unre- strained i senseless 5 a well-con- sidered plan 6 stowed away * They notice the punishment awarded to the offender, but lose eight of the gravity of the offense. t Desperate diseases need desperate remedies. Scene III] HAMLET 161 Hamlet. Not where he eats, but where he is 20 eaten: a certain convocation 1 of politic worms are e'en 2 at him. Your worm is your only em- peror for diet : we fat 3 all creatures else to fat us, and we fat ourselves for maggots : 4 your fat king, and your lean beggar, is but variable 5 service; two dishes, but to one table: that's the end.* King. Alas, alas! Hamlet. A man may fish with the worm that hath eat 7 of a king, and eat of the fish that hath fed of that worm. 30 King. What dost thou mean by this? Hamlet. Nothing, but to show you how a king may go a progress through the guts of a beggar. King. Where is Polonius? Hamlet. In heaven; send thither to see: if your messenger find him not there, seek him i' the other place 8 yourself. But, indeed, if you find him not within this month, you shall nose 9 him as you go up the stairs into the lobby. 40 King. [To some Attendants.] Go seek him there. Hamlet. He will stay till you come. [Exeunt Attendants. King. Hamlet, this deed, for thine especial safety, — Which we do tender, 10 as we dearly 11 grieve For that which thou hast done, — must send thee hence With fiery quickness: 1 * therefore prepare thy- self; The bark is ready, and the wind at help, 13 The associates tend, 14 and everything is bent For England. Hamlet. For England! King. Ay, Hamlet. Hamlet. Good. 50 King. So is it, if thou knew'st our purposes. 1 assembly 2 just now ^fatten 4 i.e. to feed on us ^various 6 i.e. of us all 7 eaten 8 i.e. hell 9 smell 10 hold precious u heartily 12 in hot haste ^favorable ^companions wait 162 HAMLET [Act IV Hamlet. I see a cherub that sees them. But come; for England! Farewell, dear mother. King. Thy loving father, Hamlet. Hamlet. My. mother: father and mother is man and wife; man and wife is one flesh; and so my mother. Come, for England! [Exit. King. Follow him at foot; 1 tempt him with speed abroad; Delay it not; I'll have him hence to-night: Away! for everything is seal'd and done, That else leans 2 on the affair: pray you, make haste. [Exeunt Rosenceantz and Guildenstern. And, England, if my love thou hold'st at aught, 3 (As my great power thereof may give thee sense, Since yet thy cicatrice^ looks raw and red After the Danish sword, and thy free 5 awe Pays homage to us,) thou mayst not coldly set 6 Our sovereign process; 1 which imports at full, By letters congruing to that effect, The present 9 death of Hamlet. Do it, England; For like the hectic 9 in my blood he rages, And thou must cure me : till I know 'tis done, Howe'er my haps, 10 my joys were ne'er begun. [Exit. Scene IV. — A Plain in Denmark. Enter Fortinbras and forces, marching. Fortinbras. Go, captain, from me greet the Danish king; Tell him that, by his license, 11 Fortinbras Claims the conveyance 12 of a promised march Over his kingdom. You know the rendezvous. *If that his majesty would aught with us, We shall express our duty in his eye; 13 And let him know so. 60 70 1 closely, at his heels 2 depends 3 of any value ^scar of a wound ^unforced ^disregard ^procedure ^immediate 9 fever 10 whatever happens ^permission 12 conduct 3 presence person. If the king desires to see me, I will go and pay my respects to him in Scene IV] HAMLET Captain. I will do't, my lord. Fortinbras. Go softly 1 on. [Exeunt Fortinbras and forces. Enter Hamlet, Rosencrantz, Guildenstern, etc. Hamlet. Good sir, whose powers 2 are these? Captain. They are of Norway, 3 sir. Hamlet. How purposed, sir, 10 I pray you? Captain. Against some part of Poland. Hamlet. Who Commands them, sir? Captain. The nephew to old Norway, Fortin- bras. Hamlet. Goes it against the main of Poland, sir, Or for some frontier? Captain. Truly to speak, and with no addition,* We go to gain a little patch of ground, That hath in it no profit but the name. *To pay five ducats, five, I would not farm it ; Nor will it yield to Norway, 5 or the Pole, 5 20 A ranker rate, 6 should it be sold in fee. 1 Hamlet. Why, then the Polack* never will defend it. Captain. Yes, 'tis already garrisoned. Hamlet. Two thousand souls, and twenty thousand ducats, Will not debate 9 the question of this straw: This is the imposthume 10 of much wealth and peace, That inward breaks, and shows no cause without Why the man dies. I humbly thank you, sir. Captain. God be wi' you, sir. [Exit. Rosencrantz. Will't please you go, my lord? 163 hlowly 2 forces Hhe king Exaggeration Hhe king ^greater income ''absolutely 8 king of Poland ^settle 10 abscess * "I would not cultivate (farm) it on the condition of paying only five ducats rental" or "I would not pay five ducats for the right of collecting (farming) its revenues." 164 HAMLET Hamlet. I'll be with you straight. 1 Go a little before. [Exeunt all except Hamlet. 30 How all occasions do inform against me, And spur my dull revenge! What is a man, *If his chief good and market of his time, Be but to sleep, and feed? a beast, no more. Sure, He that made us with such large discourse, Looking before and after, gave us not That capability and god-like reason To fust 2 in us unused. Now whether 3 it be Bestial oblivion, or some craven* scruple Of thinking too precisely on the event, 40 A thought which, quarter'd, hath but one part wisdom, And ever three parts coward, I do not know- Why yet I live to say, "This thing's to do 5 ;" Sith 6 1 have cause, and will, and strength, and means, To do 't. Examples, gross 7 as earth, exhort me : Witness this army, of such mass 8 and charge, 3 Led by a delicate and tender prince; Whose spirit, with divine ambition puff'd, 10 Makes mouths 11 at the invisible 12 event; Exposing what is mortal, and unsure, 13 50 To all that fortune, death, and danger dare, Even for an egg-shell. 14 Rightly to be great Is not to stir without great argument, 15 But greatly to find quarrel in a. straw When honour's at the stake. How stand I , then, That have a father kill'd, a mother stain' d, 16 f Excitements of my reason and my blood, 11 And let all sleep? while, to my shame, I see The imminent 13 death of twenty thousand men, That, for a fantasy and trick of fame, 19 60 Go to their graves like beds; Jfight for a plot 20 [Act IV Hrnmediately 2 grow mouldy 3 one syllable i cowardly 5 be done 6 since 7 large, con- spicuous ^numbers ^expense 10 inspired n mocks 12 unforeseen 13 insecure u a trifle Vo object of quarrel ^dishonored 17 passion ^impending ^imaginary point of honor 20 of ground *His principal aim, and "that for which he sells his time" (Johnson); or "market" may mean 'the employment" of his time. f "Provocations which excite both my reason and passion to vengeance" (Johnson). t Contend about a plot of ground not large enough to hold the contestants whilst fighting, and not sufficiently capacious to contain the slain when buried. Scene Y\ HAMLET Whereon the numbers cannot try the cause, Which is not tomb enough, and continent 1 To hide the slain? O, 2 from this time forth, My thoughts be bloody, or be nothing worth! [Exit. Scene V. — Elsinore. A Room in the Castle. Enter Queen and Hokatio. Queen. I will not speak with her. Horatio. She is importunate; indeed, dis- tract; 3 Her mood will needs be pitied.* Queen. What would she have? Horatio. She speaks much of her father ; says she hears There's tricks i' the world; and hems, and beats her heart; Spurns 5 enviously 6 at straws; speaks things in doubt, That carry but half sense ; her speech is nothing, *Yet the unshaped use of it doth move The hearers to collection; 7 they aim* at it, And botch 9 the words up fit to their own thoughts ; Which, as her winks, and nods, and gestures yield them, flndeed would make one think there might be thought, Though nothing sure, yet much unhappily. Queen. 'Twere good she were 10 spoken with, for she may strew Dangerous conjectures in ill-breeding minds. Let her come in. — [Exit Horatio. To my sick soul, as sin's true nature is, Each toy 11 seems prologue 12 to some great amiss; 13 So full of artless u jealousy 15 is guilt, It spills itself in fearing to be spilt. 10 20 165 Receptacle 2 two syllables ^distracted tcalls for pity b kicks ^spitefully ^inference s guess 9 to bungle "scan as if one word "trifle l2 prelude 1 ^disaster u ignorant 15 suspicion * Listeners attempt to draw some inference from her t One cannot help thinking that she is brooding over quite sure about, which fills her with unhappy thoughts. disjointed speech, something she is not 166 HAMLET [Act IV Re-enter Horatio, with Ophelia. Ophelia. Where is the beauteous majesty 1 of Denmark? Queen. How now, Ophelia! Ophelia. [Singing.] How should I your true love know 2 From another one? By his cockle hat and staff, And his sandal shoon. 3 Queen. Alas, sweet lady, what imports this song? Ophelia. Say you? 4 nay, pray you, mark. [Singing] He is dead and gone, lady, He is dead and gone; At his head a grass-green turf, At his heels a stone. Oh, oh! Queen. Nay, but, Ophelia, — Ophelia. Pray you, mark. [Singing.] White his shroud 5 as the mountain snow, — Enter King. Queen. Alas, look here, my lord. Ophelia. [Singing.] Larded 6 with sweet flowers ; Which bewept to the grave did go, With true-love showers. King. How do you, pretty lady? Ophelia. Well, God Held 7 you! They say the owl was a baker's daughter. Lord! we know what we are, but know not what we may be. God be at your table! King. Conceit 8 upon her father. Ophelia. Pray you, let's have no words of this; but when they ask you what it means, say you this: 30 40 l queen distinguish 3 shoes 4 what is it you say? ^winding sheet ^dressed ''yield (in its old sense "reward") Hhinking Scene V] HAMLET 167 [Singing.] To-morrow is Saint Valentine's day, 1 All in the morning betime, 2 And I a maid at your window, 50 To be your Valentine. King. How long hath she been thus? Ophelia. I hope all will be well. We must be patient : but I cannot choose but weep, 3 to think they should lay him i' the cold ground. My brother shall know of it; and so I thank you for your good counsel. — Come, my coachh Good night, ladies; good night, sweet ladies; good night, good night. [Exit. 60 King. Follow her close; 5 give her good watch, 6 I pray you. [Exit Horatio. O, this is 7 the poison of deep grief; it springs All from her father's death. O Gertrude, Ger- trude, *When sorrows come, they come not single spies, But in battalions. First, her father slain: Next, your son gone ; and he most violent author Of his own just remove: 3 the people muddied, 9 Thick and unwholesome in their thoughts and "whispers, For 10 good Polonius' death; and we have done but greenly, 11 In hugger-mugger 12 to inter him: poor Ophelia 70 Divided from herself and her fair judgment, 13 Without the which we are pictures, or mere beasts : Last, and as much containing 1 * as all these, Her brother is in secret come from France; Feeds on his wonder, keeps himself in clouds, 15 fAnd wants not buzzers 16 to infect his ear l Feb. 14 2 early hefrain from weeping 4 my carriage. see Note IV. v. 58 5 closely 6 watch her carefully 7 scan as if one word ^removal Unsettled 10 ow account of n foolishly 12 secretly 13 reason u important u his purpose hidden ^tale-bearers * Misfortunes never come singly. t And is not without whisperers who poison his ear with pestilent account of his father's death, and having no sure knowledge, they are driven to stick at nothing in accusing me of the murder to everybody. 168 HAMLET [Act IV With pestilent speeches of his father's death; Wherein necessity, of matter beggar'd, Will nothing stick our person to arraign 1 In ear and ear. 2 my dear Gertrude, this, Like to a murdering-piece, 3 in many places Gives me superfluous death.* [A noise within. Queen. • Alack, what noise is this? Enter a Gentleman. King. Where are my Switzers? 5 Let them guard the door. What is the matter? Gentleman. Save yourself, my lord: *The ocean, overpeering of his list, 6 Eats not the flats with more impetuous haste Than young Laertes, in a riotous head, 7 O'erbears your officers. 8 The rabble call him lord; And, as the world were now but to begin, Antiquity forgot, custom not known, The ratifiers and props of every word, 9 They cry, "Choose we; Laertes shall be king!" Caps, hands, and tongues applaud it to the clouds, "Laertes shall be king, Laertes king!" Queen. How cheerfully on the false trail they cry! O, this is counter, 10 you false Danish dogs! King. The doors are broke. 11 [Noise within. Enter Laertes, armed; Danes following. Laertes. Where is this king? — Sirs, stand you all without. Danes. No, let's come in. Laertes. I pray you, give me leave 12 80 90 Ho accuse me Ho everybody 3 cannon i more deaths than one b Swiss. See Note, IV. v. 83 ^rising over its boundary 7 force of riotous citizens 8 one syllable 9 proposal 10 false trail u broken in l2 i. e. to enter alone * The ocean swelling over its boundary eats away the flat country. Scene V] HAMLET 169 Danes. We will, we will. [They retire without the door.] I thank you: — keep 1 the door. — Calmly, good Laertes. Laertes thou vile king, Give me my father! Queen. King. What is the cause, Laertes, That thy rebellion looks so giant-like? Let him go, Gertrude; do not fear 2 our person: There's such divinity doth hedge a king, *That treason can but peep to 3 what it would, Acts little of his* will. Tell me, Laertes, Why thou art thus incensed: let him go, Ger- trude ; Speak, man. Laertes. Where is my father? King. Dead. Queen. But not by him. King. Let him demand his fill. Laertes. How came he dead? 5 I'll not be juggled with! To hell, allegiance! vows, to the blackest devil! Conscience and grace, to the profoundest pitl I dare damnation: to this point I stand, — That both the worlds I give to negligence, Let come what comes; only I'll be revenged Most throughly 6 for my father. King. Who shall stay you? Laertes. My will, not all the world: And, for my means, I'll husband them so well, They shall go far with little. King. Good Laertes, If you desire to know the certainty Of your dear father's death, is't writ 7 in your revenge, That, sweepstake, you will draw both friend and foe, Winner and loser? 100 110 120 l guard z fear for hn comparison with Hts Ho die ^thoroughly ''written t * Treason can do nothing more than peep in comparison with what it desires to do, and so compasses but little of its purpose. 170 HAMLET [Act IV Laertes. None but his enemies. King. Will you know them, then? Laertes. To his good friends thus wide I'll ope 1 my arms; And, like the kind life-rendering 2 pelican, Repast 3 them with my blood. King. Why, now you speak 130 Like a good child, 4 and a true gentleman. That I am guiltless of your father's death, And am most sensibly 5 in grief for it, It shall as level 6 to your judgment pierce, As day does to your eye. Danes. [Within] Let her come in. Laertes. How now! what noise is that? Re-enter Ophelia. O heat, dry up my brains! tears seven times salt, Burn out the sense 7 and virtue 8 of mine eye! By heaven, thy madness shall be paid by weight, Till our scale turn the beam. O rose of May! 140 Dear maid, kind sister, sweet Ophelia! — ■ O heavens! is't possible, a young maid's wits Should be as mortal as an old man's life? Nature is ./me 9 in love; and, where 'tis fine, It sends some precious instance 10 of itself After the thing it loves. Ophelia. [Singing.] They bore him barefaced 11 on the bier; Hey non nonny, nonny, hey nonny: And in his grave rain'd many a tear, — Fare you well, my dove! 12 150 Laertes. Hadst thou thy wits, and didst per- suade 13 revenge, It could not move thus. 14 Ophelia. You must sing a-down a-down and you call him a-down-a. O, how the wheel be- comes it! It is the false steward, that stole his master's daughter. Laertes. This nothing's more than matter 15 x open 2 giving up her own life. See Note, IV. v. 129 s feed ^dutiful son ^feelingly ^directly 7 feeling 3 power (of sight) 9 pure, refined 10 sample lx face uncovered 12 i.e. Laertes 13 urge me on to 14 (me) as strongly 15 words only, no sense Scene V] HAMLET 171 Ophelia. There's rosemary, that's for remem- brance; pray, love, remember: and there is pansies; that's for thoughts. 160 Laertes. A document 1 in madness — thoughts and remembrance fitted. Ophelia. There's fennel for you, 2 and colum- bines: — there's rue for you; 3 and here's some for me: we may call it herb of grace o' Sundays: — ■ O, you* may wear your rue with a difference. — There's a daisy: — I would give you some violets, but they withered all when my father died: — they say he made a good end, — [Singing.] For bonny sweet Robin is all my joy. 170 Laertes. Thought 5 and affliction, passion, 6 hell itself, She turns to favour, 7 and to prettiness. Ophelia. [Singing.] And will he not come again? And will he not come again? No, no, he is dead: Go to thy death-bed: He never will come again. His beard was as white as snow, All flaxen was his poll. s He is gone, he is gone, 180 And we cast away moan: 3 God ha' 10 mercy on his soul! And of all Christian souls! I pray God. — God bem' u you! [Exit. Laertes. Do you see this, O God? King. Laertes, I must commune with 12 your grief, Or you deny me 13 right. 1 * Go but apart, Make choice *of whom your wisest friends you will, And they shall hear and judge 'twixt you and me : Hesson Hhe king Hhe queen Hhe queen ^anxiety ^suffering ''grace 8 head s waste our moans 10 have n with 12 share in 13 me (dative) u my right Of your wisest friends whom you will. 172 HAMLET [Act IV *If by direct or by collateral hand 1 They find us touch'd, 2 we will our kingdom give, 190 Our crown, our life, and all that we call ours, To you in satisfaction; but if not, Be you content to lend your patience to us, And we shall jointly labour with your soul To give it due content. Laertes. Let this be so; His means 3 of death, his obscure funeral, No trophy, sword, nor hatchment* o'er his bones, No noble rite, nor formal ostentation, 5 Cry to be heard, as 'twere from heaven to earth, That I must calVt in question* King. So you shall; 200 fAnd, where the offence is, let the great axe fall. I pray you go with me. [Exeunt. Scene VI. — Another Room in the Castle. Enter Horatio and a Servant. Horatio. What 7 are they that would speak with me? Servant. Sailors, sir: they say they have letters for you. Horatio. Let them come in. [Exit Servant. I do not know from what part of the world I should be greeted, 8 if not from Lord Hamlet. Enter Sailors. 1st Sailor. God bless you, sir. Horatio. Let Him bless thee, too. 1st Sailor. He shall, sir, an'P please Him. There's a letter for you, sir; it comes from the ambassador that was bound for England; if 10 your name be Horatio, as I am let to know 10 it is. Hndirectly ^implicated Hhe means of Escutcheon ^outward show ^demand an inquiry ''what manner of men 8 saluted with greetings Hfit ^informed * If they find me implicated (touched) in the murder, either having com- mitted it myself (directly), or by employing assassins (collaterally). f Let the axe of the executioner fall on the offender. Scene VI] HAMLET Horatio. [Reads.] " Horatio, when thou shalt have overlooked 1 this, give these fellows some means* to the king: they have letters for him. Ere we were two days old at sea, a pirate of very warlike appointment 3 gave us chase. Finding ourselves too slow of sail, we put on a compelled* valour: in the grapple I boarded them; on the instant they got clear of our ship; so I alone be- came their prisoner. They have dealt with me like thieves of mercy: 5 but they knew what they did; I am to do a good turn for them. Let the king have the letters I have sent; and repair thou to me with as much haste as thou wouldst fly death. I have words to speak in thine ear will 6 make thee dumb; yet are they, *much too light for the bore of the matter. These good fel- lows will bring thee where I am. Rosencrantz and Guildenstern hold their course for England: of them I have much to tell thee. Farewell. "He that thou knowest thine, Hamlet." Come, I will give you 7 way for these your letters ; And do't the speedier, 8 that you may direct me To him from whom you brought them. [Exeunt. Scene VII. — Another Room in the Castle. Enter King and Laertes. King. Now must your conscience my ac- quittance 9 seal, And you must put me in your heart for friend, Sith 10 you have heard, and with a knowing ear, That he which hath your noble father slain Pursued my life. Laertes. It well 11 appears: — but tell me Why you proceeded not against these feats 12 fSo crimeful 13 and so capital in nature, As by your safety, wisdom, all things else, You mainly were stirr'd up. 20 30 173 Hooked over, i.e. read 2 means (of access) Equipment Hn desperation ^merciful 5 (which) will 7 dative 8 more speedily ^acquittal 10 since n plainly 12 deeds ^criminal * Inadequate to express the importance of the matter. t In their nature so criminal and deserving the punishment of death. 174 HAMLET King. O, for two special reasons; Which may to you, perhaps, seem much un- sinew'd, 1 10 But yet to me they are strong. The queen, his mother, Lives almost by his looks; 2 and for myself. My virtue, or my plague, be it either which, She's so conjunctive 3 to my life and soul, That, as the star moves not but in his sphere,* I could not but by her. The other motive, Why to a public count 5 1 might not go, Is the great love the general gender 6 bear him; Who, dipping all his faults in their affection, Would, like the spring that turneth wood to stone, 20 Convert his gyves 7 to graces; so that my arrows,* Too slightly timbered for so loud a wind, Would have reverted 9 to my bow again, And not where I had aimed them. 10 Laertes. And so have I a noble father lost; A sister driven into desperate terms; Whose worth, *if praises may go back again, Stood challenger on mount of all the age For her perfections: but my revenge will come. King. Break not your sleeps for that: you must not think 30 That we are made of stuff so flat and dull, tThat we can let our beard be shook 11 with dan- ger, And think it pastime. You shortly shall hear more: I loved your father, and we love ourself ; And that, I hope, will teach you to imagine Enter a Messenger. How now! what news? Messenger. Letters, my lord, from Hamlet : This to your majesty; this to the queen. [Act IV ^^strengthless 2 on the sight of him s closely joined *orbit ^account, trial ^common people 7 fetters 8 i. e. schemes (against Hamlet) Hurned back 10 gone to the mark 11 shaken * If I may praise her as she was before her madness. t Danger being so near as to come into our very face. Scene VIII HAMLET 175 King. From Hamlet! who brought them? Messenger. Sailors, my lord, they say; I saw them not: They were given me by Claudio; he received them 40 Of 1 him that brought them. King. Laertes, you shall hear them. Leave us. [Exit Messenger. [Reads] ' High and mighty, you shall know I am set naked 2 on your kingdom. To-morrow shall I beg leave to see your kingly eyes : when I shall, first asking your pardon thereunto, recount the occasion of my sudden and more strange return. "Hamlet." What should 3 this mean? Are all the rest come back, Or is it some abuse,* and no such thing? Laertes. Know you the hand? King. 'Tis Hamlet's character: 5 — "naked,"— 50 And, in a postscript here, he says, "alone." Can you advise me? Laertes. I'm lost 6 in it, my lord. But let him come; It warms the very sickness in my heart, That 1 1 shall live and tell him to his teeth, "Thus didest thou." King. *If it be so, Laertes, As 8 how should it be so? how otherwise? Will you be ruled 9 by me? Laertes. Ay, my lord; So you will not o'errule me to a peace. King. To thine own peace. If he be now return'd, 60 As checking at his voyage, and that he means No more to undertake it, I will work him To an exploit, now ripe 10 in my device, 11 l from 2 alone z can possibly Hrick ^handwriting ^perplexed Ho think that 8 for indeed ^guided 10 matured u scheme * If he be really returned; but how can he be? and yet to judge from this letter he must have come back. 176 HAMLET [Act IV Under the which he shall not choose but 1 fall : And for his death no wind of blame 2 shall breathe; But even his mother shall uncharge 3 the prac- tice, i And call it accident. Laertes. My lord, I will be ruled; The rather, if you could devise it so, That I might be the organ. 6 King. It falls right* You have been talk'd of since your travel much, 70 And that in Hamlet's hearing, for a quality'' Wherein, they say, you shine: your sum of parts Did not together pluck such envy from him, As did that one; and that, in my regard, 9 Of the unworthiest siege. 9 Laertes. What part is that, my lord? King. A very riband in the cap of youth, Yet needful too; for youth no less becomes The light and careless livery 10 that it wears, Than settled age his sables and his weeds, 11 Importing 12 health and graveness. — Two months since Here was a gentleman of Normandy: I've seen myself, and served against, the French, And they can well on horseback ; but this gallant Had witchcraft in't; he grew unto his seat; And to such wondrous doing brought his horse, As he had been incorpsed 13 and demi-natured With the brave beast: *so far he topp'd 1 * my thought, That I, in forgery 15 of shapes and tricks, Come short of what he did. Laertes. A Norman was 't? King. A Norman. Laertes. Upon my life, Lamond. King. The very same. 80 Cannot help falling 2 breath of scandal 3 bring no charge of Hrickery Hnstrument, means ^exactly ''accomplish- ment ^opinion 9 seat or rank 10 dress u robes 12 denoting incorporate ^surpassed ^imagination * So far did he exceed my imagination that I, in conceiving all possible shapes and maneuvers, etc. Scene VII] HAMLET 177 Laertes. I know him well : *he is the brooch, indeed, And gem of all the nation. King. He made confession of you; And gave you such a masterly report For art and exercise in your defence, And for your rapier most especial, That he cried out, 'twould be a sight indeed If one could match you: the scrimers 1 of their nation, He swore, had neither motion, 2 guard, nor eye If you opposed them. Sir, this report of his fDid Hamlet so envenom with his envy, 3 That he could nothing do but wish and beg Your sudden coming o'er, to play with him. Now, out of this Laertes. What out of this, my lord? King. Laertes, was your father dear to you? Or are you like the painting of a sorrow, A face without a heart? Laertes. Why ask you this? King. Not that I think you did not love your father; But thatf I know love is begun by time; And that I see, in passages of proof, Time qualifies the spark and fire of it. There lives within the very flame of love A kind of wick, or snuff, that will abate it; And nothing is at a like goodness still;* For goodness, growing to a plurisy, 5 Dies in his own too-much: that we would do, We should 6 do when we would; 7 °for this "would" 7 changes, 100 110 fencers Hhrust 3 jealousy of him *always ^redundancy of blood a ought to (should) 7 desire (would) * The brightest ornament and most precious person in all the nation. t Impregnate Hamlet with jealousy of his skill. 1 1 know that love commences at a precise moment of time, and I observe by passages of experience that it dies out in course of time. ° Our will is apt, for many reasons, to postpone performance of action and then the duty remains neglected and undone, and we become like spend- thrifts, vainly sighing for the estate we have squandered. 178 HAMLET [Act IV And hath abatements and delays as many, As there are tongues, are hands, are accidents; 120 And then this "should" is like *a spendthrift sigh, That hurts by easing. But, to the quick o' the ulcer: 1 — Hamlet comes back : what would you undertake, To show yourself your father's son in deed More than in words? Laertes. To cut his throat i ' the church . King. No place, indeed, should murder sanctuarize; 2 Revenge should have no bounds. But, good Laertes, fWill you do this, keep close within your chamber? Hamlet, return'd, shall know you are come home: We'll put 3 on those* shall praise your excellence, 130 And set a double varnish on the fame The Frenchman gave you; bring you, in fine, 5 together, And wager on your heads : he, being remiss, 6 JMost generous, 7 and free from all contriving, Will not peruse 3 the foils; so that, with ease, Or with a little shuffling, you may choose A sword unbated, 9 and, in a pass of practice, 10 Requite him for your father. Laertes. I will do 't: And, for that purpose, I'll anoint my sword. I bought an unction 11 of a mountebank 12 140 So mortal, 13 that but dip a knife in it, Where it draws blood no cataplasm 1 * so rare, Collected from all ° simples 15 that have virtue Under the moon, can save the thing from death That is but scratch'd withal; I'll touch my point ^oot of the matter 2 protect Hnstigate Hhose (who) Hn short ^careless ''noble-hearted ^examine closely 9 unblunted, i.e. without a button ^treacherous thrust lx a salve 12 quack lz deadly u plaster ^medicinal herbs * An unnecessary sigh that wastes the strength. t If you are determined to do this. % Most noble-hearted and absolutely straightforward. ° Plants that have magic virtues when gathered by moonlight. Scene VII] HAMLET 179 With this contagion, 1 that, if I gall 2 him slightly, It may be death. King. Let's further think of this : Weigh what convenience, both of time and means, *May fit us to our shape: if this should fail, And that our drift 3 look* through our bad per- formance, 150 'Twere better not assay' d; 5 therefore this project Should have a back, 6 or second, that might hold, If this should blast 7 in proof. a Soft ! — let me see : We'll make a solemn wager on your cunnings: 9 Iha'fc When in your motion you are hot and dry 10 As 11 make your bouts more violent to that end, And that he calls for drink, I'll have prepared him A chalice for the nonce, 12 whereon but sipping, If he by chance escape your venom'd stuck 13 160 Our purpose may hold there. Enter Queen. How now, sweet queen! Queen. One woe doth tread upon another's heel, So fast they follow: your sister's drown'd, Laertes. Laertes. Drown'd! 0, where? Queen. There is a willow grows aslant 14 a brook, That shows his hoar leaves in the glassy stream ; There with fantastic garlands did she come Of crow-flowers, nettles, daisies, and long purples, 15 That liberal 16 shepherds give a grosser name, But our cold maids do dead men's fingers call them: 170 poison 2 scratch Hntention Appear Attempted ^backer 7 burst Hesting 'skill 10 thirsty ^occasion 13 thrust in fencing u leaning over u purple orchid ie freer spoken * "Enable us to act our proposed part." 180 HAMLET [Act V There, on the pendent boughs her coronet weeds Clambering to hang, an envious sliver broke; When down her weedy trophies, and herself, Fell in the weeping brook. Her clothes spread wide, And, mermaid-like, a while they bore her up: Which 1 time, she chanted snatches of old tunes; As one incapable 2 of her own distress, *Or like a creature native and indued Unto that element: but long it could not be, Till that her garments, heavy with their drink, PulFd the poor wretch from her melodious lay To muddy death. Laertes. Alas, then she is drown'd? Queen. Drown'd, drown'd. Laertes. Too much of water hast thou, poor Ophelia, And therefore I forbid my tears : but yet It is our trick; 3 nature her custom holds, Let shame say what it will : fwhen these are gone, The woman will be out. — Adieu, my lord: I have a speech of fire, that fain would blaze, But that this folly douts it.* [Exit. King. Let's follow, Gertrude. How much I had to do to calm his rage! Now fear I this will give it start 6 again; Therefore, let's follow. [Exeunt. ACT V. Scene I. — A Churchyard. Enter two Clowns, with spades, etc. 1st Clown. Is she to be buried in Christian burial, that wilfully seeks her own salvation? 6 2nd Clown. I tell thee, she is; and therefore make her grave straight: 7 the crowner 3 hath sat on her, and finds it Christian burial. 180 190 during which 2 unable to feel (three sylla- bles) particular habit *puts it out, extinguishes 6 set it in motion 6 he means destruction 7 immediately s coroner * "Connected by nature with and endowed with qualities enabling her to live in water." f When I have ceased weeping I will put away this womanish way. Scene I] HAMLET 181 1st Clown. How can that be, unless she drowned herself in her own defence? 2nd Clown. Why, 'tis found so. 1st Clown. It must be se offendendo; it can- not be else. For here lies the point : if I drown 10 myself wittingly, it argues an act: and an act hath three branches; it is to act, to do, and to perform: argal, 1 she drowned herself wittingly. 2nd Clown. Nay, but hear you, goodman delver. 2 1st Clown. Give me leave. Here lies the water; good: here stands the man; good: if the v man go to this water, and drown himself, it is, will he, nill he, he goes; mark you that? but if the water come to him, and drown him, he 20 drowns not himself: argal, he that is not guilty of his own death shortens not his own life. 2nd Clown. But is this law? 1st Clown. Ay, marry, is't; crowner's quest 3 law. 2nd Clown. Will you ha' the truth on 't? If this had not been a gentlewoman, she should have been buried out of Christian burial. 1st Clown. Why, there thou say'st;* and the more pity, that great folk should have counte- 30 nance 5 in this world to drown or hang them- selves, more than their even 6 Christian. — Come, my spade. There is no ancient gentlemen but gardeners, ditchers, and grave-makers: they hold up Adam's profession. 2nd Clown. Was he a gentleman? 1st Clown. He was the first that ever bore arms. 7 2nd Clown . Why, he had none. 1st Clown. What, art a heathen? How dost 40 thou understand the Scripture? The Scripture says, Adam digged: could he dig without arms? 8 I'll put another question to thee: if thou an- swerest me not to the purpose, confess thyself — 2nd Clown. Go to. l ergo, consequently Higger Hnquest Ho the point ^approval fellow ''armorial bearings 8 a play on words 182 HAMLET [Act V 1st Clown. What is he that builds stronger than either the mason, the shipwright, or the carpenter? 2nd Clown. The gallows-maker; for that frame outlives a thousand tenants. 1 50 1st Clown. I like thy wit well, in good faith: the gallows does well ; but how does it well? it does well to those that do ill : now, thou dost ill to say the gallows is built stronger than the church: argal, 2 the gallows may do well to thee. To't again, come. 2nd Clown. Who builds stronger than a mason, a shipwright, or a carpenter? 1st Clown. Ay, tell me that, and unyoke. 2nd Clown. Marry, now I can tell. 60 1st Clown. To't. 2nd Clown. Mass, 3 1 cannot tell. Enter Hamlet and Horatio at a distance. 1st Clown. Cudgel thy brains no more about it, for your dull ass will not mend his pace with beating; and, when you are asked this question next, say "a grave-maker:" the houses that he makes last till doomsday. Go, get thee to Yaughan;* fetch me a stoop 5 of liquor. [Exit 2nd Clown. [He digs and sings. [ In youth, when I did love, did love, Methought it was very sweet, 70 To contract, O, the time, for, ah, my behove, O, methought, there was nothing meet. 6 Hamlet. Has this fellow no feeling of his business, that he sings at grave-making? Horatio. *Custom hath made it in him a property of easiness. Hamlet. 'Tis e'en so: the hand of little em- ployment hath the daintier 7 sense, 1 occupants "^therefore 3 by the mass 4 may be a cor- ruption of Johan Hankard ^suitable ''more delicate * Custom has made it an easy duty for Him: one unhardened by habit would feel it more keenly. Scene I] HAMLET 183 1st Clown. [Sings] But age, with his stealing steps, Hath claw'd me in his clutch, 80, And hath shipped me intill 1 the land, As if I had never been such. [Throws up a skull. Hamlet. That skull had a tongue in it, and could sing once : how the knave jowls 2 it to the ground, as if it were Cain's jaw-bone, that did the first murder! It might be the pate of a poli- tician, 3 which this ass now o'er-reaches; one that would 4 circumvent God, might it not? Horatio. It might, my lord. Hamlet. Or of a courtier; which could say, 90 "Good-morrow, sweet lord! How dost thou, good lord?" This might be my lord such-a-one, that praised my lord such-a-one's horse, when he meant to beg it; might it not? Horatio. Ay, my lord. Hamlet. Why, e'en so; and now my Lady Worm's; chapless, 6 and knocked about the mazard 6 with a sexton's spade: here's fine revolution, 7 an ' we had the trick 6 to see't. Did these bones cost no more the 9 breeding, but to 100 play at loggats with them? mine ache to think on't. 1st Clown. [Sings.] A pick-axe, and a spade, a spade, For and 10 a shrouding sheet: O, a pit of clay for to be made For such a guest is meet. [Throws up another skull. Hamlet. There's another: why may not that be the skull of a lawyer? Where be his quiddits 11 now, his quillets, 12 his cases, his tenures, and his tricks? why does he suffer this rude knave now 110 to knock him about the sconce 13 with a dirty shovel, and will not tell him of his action of battery? 1 * Hum ! This fellow might be in 's time Hnto 2 knocks 3 schemer *would like to ^without a jaw 6 head ''wonderful change 8 skill 9 (in) the 10 and also 11 equivocations 12 nice points 13 head u for assault 184 HAMLET [Act V a great buyer of land, with his statutes, his re- cognizances, his fines, his double vouchers, his recoveries : is this the fine 1 of his fines, and the recovery of his recoveries, to have his fine pate full of fine dirt? Will his vouchers vouch him no more of his purchases, and double ones too, than the length and breadth of a pair of indentures? 120 The very conveyances of his lands will hardly lie in this box; and must the inheritor 2 himself have no more, ha? Horatio. Not a jot more, my lord. Is not parchment made of sheep- Hamlet. skins? Horatio Hamlet. Ay, my lord, and of calf-skins too. They are sheep, and calves, which seek out assurance in that. I will speak to this fellow. Whose grave's this, sir? 130 1st Clown. Mine, sir. [*Singfs.j O, a pit of clay for to be made For such a guest is meet. Hamlet. I think it be thine, indeed; for thou liest in't. 1st Clown. You lie out on't, 3 sir, and there- fore it is not yours : for my part, I do not lie in 't, and yet it is mine. Hamlet. Thou dost lie in't, to be in't, and say it is thine: 'tis for the dead, not for the 140 quick;* therefore thou liest. 1st Clown. 'Tis a quick 5 lie, sir; 'twill away again, from me to you. Hamlet. What man dost thou dig it for? 1st Clown. For no man, sir. Hamlet. What woman, then? 1st Clown. For none, neither. Hamlet. Who is to be buried in't? 1st Clown. One that was a woman, sir; but, rest her soul, she's dead. 150 Hamlet. How absolute 6 the knave is! we must speak by the card, 7 or equivocation 8 will undo us. By the Lord, Horatio, these three hnd possessor 3 ofit Hiving Hively ^-particular "'carefully ^double mean- ing Scene I] HAMLET years I have taken note of it; the age is grown so picked, 1 that the toe of the peasant comes so near the heel of the courtier, he galls 2 his kibe. 3 — How long hast thou been a grave-maker? 1st Clown. Of all the days i' the year, I came to't that day that our last king Hamlet over- came Fortinbras. 160 Hamlet. How long is that since? 1st Clown. Cannot you tell that? every fool can tell that: it was the very day that young Hamlet was born; he that is mad, and sent into England. Hamlet. Ay, marry, why was he sent into England? 1st Clown. Why, because he was mad: he shall recover his wits there; or, if he do not, it's no great matter there. 170 Hamlet. Why? 1st Clown. 'Twill not be seen in him there; there the men are as mad as he. Hamlet. How came he mad? 1st Clown. Very strangely, they say. Hamlet. How strangely? 1st Clown. 'Faith, e'en with losing his wits. Hamlet. Upon what ground? i 1st Clown. Why, here in Denmark: I have been sexton here, man and boy, thirty years. 180 Hamlet. How long will a man lie i' the earth ere he rot? 1st Clown. Faith, if he be not rotten before he die, he will last you some eight year, or nine year : a tanner will last you nine year. Hamlet. Why he more than another? 1st Clown. Why, sir, his hide is so tanned with his trade, that he will keep out water a great while; and your water is a sore decayer of your dead body. Here's a skull now; this skull 190 has lain in the earth three and twenty years. Hamlet. Whose was it? 185 1 precise, particular hubs 3 chap, or sore on the heel *for what cause 186 HAMLET [Act V 1st Clown. A mad fellow's it was: whose do you think it was? Hamlet. Nay, I know not. 1st Clown. A pestilence on him for a mad rogue! 'a 1 poured a flagon of Rhenish 2 on my head once. This same skull, sir, was Yorick's 3 skull, the king's jester. Hamlet. This? 200 1st Clown. E'en that. Hamlet. Let me see. — [Takes the skull.] — Alas, poor Yorick! — I knew him, Horatio: a fellow of infinite jest,* of most excellent fancy : he hath borne me on his back a thousand times; and now, how abhorred in my imagination it is! my gorge 5 rises at it. Here hung those lips, that I have kissed I know not how oft. Where be your gibes 6 now? your gambols? your songs? your flashes of merriment, that were wont to set 210 the table on a roar? Not one now, to mock your own grinning? quite chap-fallen? 1 Now get you to my lady's chamber, and tell her, let her paint an inch thick, to this favour 8 she must come; make her laugh at that.— Pr'ythee, Horatio, tell me one thing. Horatio. What's that, my lord? Hamlet. Dost thou think Alexander 9 looked o' this fashion i' the earth? 10 Horatio. E'en so. 220 Hamlet. And smelt so? pah! [Puts down the skull. Horatio. E'en so, my lord. Hamlet. To what base uses we may return, Horatio! Why may not imagination trace the noble dust of Alexander, till he find it stopping a bung-hole? Horatio. 'Twere to consider too curiously, to consider so. Hamlet. No, faith, not a jot; but to follow him thither with modesty enough, 11 and likelihood 230 to lead it; as thus: Alexander died, Alexander ^Rhenish wine ^George's Hnexhaustible wit Hhroat, i.e. / feel sick e clever sarcasm ''quite fallen away 8 appearance 9 Alexander the Great 10 when buried ^without exag- geration Scene I] HAMLET 187 was buried, Alexander returneth into dust; the dust is earth; of earth we make loam; and why of that loam whereto he was converted, might they not stop a beer-barrel? Imperious Caesar, dead and turn'd to clay, Might stop a hole to keep the wind away: O, that that earth, which kept the world in awe, Should patch a wall to expel the winter's flaw! 1 But soft! but soft! aside: — here comes the king. 240 Enter Priests, etc., in procession: the corpse of Ofhelia, Laertes and Mourners following; King, Queen, their trains, etc. The queen, the courtiers: who is that they follow? 2 And with such maimed 3 rites? This doth betoken The corse they follow did with desperate hand Fordo* its own life: 'twas of some estate. 5 Couch 6 we awhile, and mark. [Retiring with Horatio. Laertes. What ceremony else? Hamlet. That is Laertes, a very noble youth : mark. Laertes. What ceremony else? 1st Priest. Her obsequies 7 have been as far enlarged As we have warranty: 6 her death was doubtful; 250 And, *but that great command o'ersways the order, She should 9 in ground unsanctified 10 have lodged, Till the last trumpet; for 11 charitable prayers, Shards, 12 flints, and pebbles should be thrown on her: ^ust of wind 2 (to the grave) defective ^undo, destroy b rank Hie down and hide ''funeral rites permission 9 ought to 10 unconsecrated n in the place of 12 potsherds * Were it not that the express command of the king overrides the decree (or canon) of the Church. 188 HAMLET [Act V Yet here she is allow'd her virgin crants, 1 Her maiden strewments, and the bringing home Of bell and burial. Laertes. Must there no more be done? 1st Priest. No more be done: We should profane the service of the dead, To sing a requiem, 2 and such rest to her 260 As to peace-parted 3 souls. Laertes. Lay her i' the earth; And from her fair and unpolluted flesh May violets spring! I tell thee, churlish priest, A ministering angel shall my sister be, When thou liest howling.* Hamlet. What, the fair Ophelia! Queen. Sweets to the sweet: farewell! [Scattering flowers. I hoped thou shouldst have been my Hamlet's wife; I thought* thy bride-bed to have deck'd, sweet maid, And not have strew'd thy grave. Laertes. O, treble woe Fall ten times treble on that cursed head, 270 Whose wicked deed thy most ingenious sense 5 Deprived thee of! Hold off the earth awhile, Till I have caught her once more in mine arms: [Leaping into the grave. Now pile your dust upon the quick 7 and dead, Till of this^ai 8 a mountain you have made, To o'er-top old Pelion, or the skyish head Of blue Olympus. Hamlet. [Advancing] What 9 is he, whose grief Bears such an emphasis? whose phrase of sorrow Conjures 10 the wandering stars, 11 and makes them stand, 12 Like wonder^wounded 13 hearers? This is I, 280 Hamlet the Dane. [Leaping into the grave. Laertes. The devil take thy soul! [Grappling with him. 1 garlands 2 hymn of peace 3 departed in peace " 4 i. e.for mercy s fondly ex~ pected ^intellect Hiving Hevel surface h.e. manner of man 10 invokes n planets 12 i.e. still 13 struck with wonder Scene I] HAMLET 189 Hamlet. Thou pray'st not well. I pr'ythee, take thy fingers from my throat; For though I am not splenetive 1 and rash, Yet have I something in me dangerous, Which let thy wisdom fear: hold off thy hand. King. Pluck them asunder. Queen. Hamlet, Hamlet! All. Gentlemen, — Horatio. Good, my lord, be quiet. [The Attendants part them, and they come out of the grave. Hamlet. Why, I will fight with him upon this theme 2 Until my eyelids will no longer wag.* Queen. O my son, what theme? Hamlet. I loved Ophelia: forty thousand brothers Could not, with all their quantity of love, Make up my sum. What wilt thou do for her? King. O, he is mad, Laertes. Queen. For* love of God, forbear him. Hamlet. 'Swounds , 5 show me what thou 'It do : Woo 'P weep? woo 't fight? woo 't fast? woo 't tear thyself? Woo't drink up Esil? eat a crocodile? I'll do't. Dost thou come here to whine? To out-face 1 me with leaping in her grave? Be buried quick 8 with her, and so will I : And, if thou prate* of mountains, let them throw Millions of acres on us; *till our ground, Singeing his pate against the burning zone, Make Ossa like 10 a wart! Nay, and 11 thou'lt mouth, I'll rant as well as thou. Queen.''" This is mere 12 madness: And thus awhile the fit will work on him ; Anon 1 * as patient as the female dove, 290 300 ^■easily angered 2 subject 3 move *for (the) 5 by God's wounds s wouldst (thou) ''browbeat s alive hant 10 no bigger than 12 absolute l3 soon * Till the spot we stand on burns its top against the zodiac (burning zone), or imaginary path of the sun. 190 HAMLET [Act V When that her golden couplets 1 are disclosed, 2 310 His silence will sit drooping. - Hamlet. Hear you, sir; What is the reason that you use me thus? I loved you ever: but it is no matter; Let Hercules himself do what he may, The cat will mew, and dog will have his day. [Exit. King. I pray you, good Horatio, wait upon him. [Exit Horatio. [To Laertes.] Strengthen your patience in 3 our last night's speech; We'll put the matter to the present push. — 4 Good Gertrude, set some watch over your son. This grave shall have a living monument : 320 An hour of quiet shortly shall we see ; Till then, in patience our proceeding be. [Exeunt. Scene II. — A Hall in the Castle. Enter Hamlet and Horatio. Hamlet. So much for this, sir : now shall you see the other: 5 You do remember all the circumstance? 6 Horatio. Remember it, my lord! Hamlet. Sir, in my heart there was a kind of fighting 7 That would not let me sleep: methought I lay Worse than the mutines* in the bilboes. 9 Rashly, 10 And praised be rashness 11 for it : let us know, Our indiscretion sometimes serves us well, When our deep plots do pall: 12 and that should teach, There's a divinity that shapes our ends, 1 Rough-hew them how we will. Horatio. That is most certain. 1 young 2 producea Hn the thought of Hnstant test ^document ^details ''struggle s rebels ^stocks 10 hastily ^haste ■ 2 fail Scene II] HAMLET 191 Hamlet Up from my cabin, My sea-gown scarfed about 1 me, in the dark Groped* I to find out them: had my desire; Finger 'd 3 their packet ; and, in fine, withdrew To mine own room* again: making so bold, My fears forgetting manners, to unseal Their grand commission; where I found, Horatio, — royal knavery! — an exact command, Larded 5 with many several sorts of reasons, 20 Importing 6 Denmark's 1 health, and England's 1 too, With, ho! *such bugs 8 and goblins in my life, That, on the supervise, 9 no leisure bated, 10 No, not to stay 11 the grinding of the axe, My head should be struck off. Horatio. Is 't possible? Hamlet. Here's the commission: read it at more leisure. But wilt thou hear me how I did proceed? Horatio. I beseech you. Hamlet. Being thus benetted 12 round with villainies, — fEre I could make a prologue to my brains, 30 They 13 had begun the play. I sat me down; Devised a new commission; wrote it fair: 14 1 once did hold it, as our statists 15 do, A baseness 16 to write fair, and labour'd much How to forget that learning; but, sir, now It did me yeoman's 11 service: wilt thou know The effect 13 of what I wrote? Horatio. Ay, good my lord. Hamlet. An earnest conjuration 19 from the king, As England was his faithful tributary; As love between them like the palm might flourish; 40 Hhrown loosely round 2 sought 3 put my hand on l cabin Hnterspersed ^concerning ''king of s bugbears Hooking over 10 without delay ll wait for 12 ensnared 13 i.e. my brains u in good hand writing 15 statesmen 16 mark of low birth 17 right trusty 18 purport 19 solemn appeal * Such bugbears and imaginary fears caused through my being alive, t Ere I could devise a plan, my brains had commenced the work. 192 HAMLET As peace should still her wheaten garland wear, And stand a comma 'tween their amities; 1 And many such-like as'es of great charge, 2 — That, on the view and know 3 of these contents, Without debatement" further, more or less, He should the bearers put to sudden* death, Not shriving-time allowed. Horatio. How was this sealed? Hamlet. Why, even in that was heaven ordinant. 6 I had my father's signet in my purse, Which was the model 1 of that Danish seal ; Folded the writ 9 up in the form of the other; Subscribed 3 it; gave't the impression; 10 placed it safely, The changeling never known. Now, the next day Was our sea-fight ; and what to this was sequent 11 Thou know'st already. Horatio. So Guildenstern and Rosencrantz go to't. 12 Hamlet. *Why, man, they did make love to this employment ; They are not near 13 my conscience; ftheir defeat 1 * Does by their own insinuation 15 grow: 'Tis dangerous, when the baser nature comes Between the pass 16 and fell 1 '' incensed points Of mighty opposites 1 8 Horatio. Why, what a king is this! Hamlet. Does it not, 19 think 'st thee, stand me now upon 19 — He that hath kill'd my king, and wronged my mother; Popp'd in between the election and my hopes; 50 60 [Act V friendships 2 weighty pro- visos heading and knowledge debate Hnstant ^ordaining ''counterpart ^document 9 signed 10 sealed ^subsequent 12 to their death 13 do not trouble destruction ^intrusion 16 thrust 17 deadly ^adversaries 19 is it not incumbent upon me? it *They undertook this service for the king of their own free will; exactly accorded with their own wishes. t Their destruction (i. e. of Rosencrantz and Guildenstern) has been brought about by their wilful intruding into this business; it is dangerous for any one to come between the thrust (pass) and sword-points of angry (incensed) opponents fighting a deadly (Jell) duel. Scene II] HAMLET Thrown out his angle for my proper 1 life, And with such cozenage 2 — is't not perfect con- science, To quit 3 him with this arm? and is't not to be damn'd To let this canker of our nature come In further evil? 70 Horatio. It must be shortly* known to him from England What is the issue 5 of the business there. Hamlet. It will be short : the interim 6 is mine ; And a man's life's no more than to say "One." But I am very sorry, good Horatio, That to Laertes I forgot myself; For, by the image 7 of my cause, I see The portraiture of his: I'll court his favours: 8 But, sure, the bravery 9 of his grief did put me Into a towering passion. Horatio. Peace! who comes here? 80 Enter Osric. Osric. Your lordship is right welcome back to Denmark. Hamlet. I humbly thank you, sir. — Dost know this water-fly? Horatio. No, my good lord. Hamlet. Thy state is the more gracious; for 'tis a vice to know him. He hath much land, and fertile: let a beast be lord of beasts, and his crib 10 shall stand at the king's mess: 11 'tis a chough; 12 but, as I say, spacious in the possession 90 of dirt 13 Osric. Sweet lord, if your lordship were at leisure, I should 1 * impart a thing 15 to you from his majesty. Hamlet. I will receive it, sir, with all diligence of spirit. Put your bonnet 15 to his right use; 'tis for the head. Osric. I thank your lordship, 'tis very hot. 193 hod and line for my own life Hrickery Ho settle with him *soon 5 result Hntervening time ''reflection s good will dragging 10 manger Stable 12 chattering jackdaw 13 land u it is my duty 15 something "cap 194 HAMLET [Act V Hamlet. No, believe me, 'tis very cold; the wind is northerly. _ 100 Osric. It is indifferent 1 cold, my lord, indeed. Hamlet. But yet, methinks, it is very sultry, and hot; or my complexion 2 ■ Osric. Exceedingly, my lord; it is very sul- try, — as 'twere, — I cannot tell how. — But, my lord, his majesty bade me signify to you, that he has laid a great wager on your head. Sir, this is the matter Hamlet. I beseech you, remember [Hamlet moves him to put on his hat. Osric. Nay, in good faith; for mine ease, in 110 good faith. Sir, here is newly come to court Laertes; believe me, an absolute 3 gentleman, full of most excellent differences,* of very soft 5 society, and great showing: 5 indeed, to speak feelingly of him, he is the card or calendar of gentry; 7 for you shall find in him the continent* of what part a gentleman would see. Hamlet. Sir, *his definemenP suffers no per- dition 10 in you: — though, I know, to divide him inventorially, n would dizzy the arithmetic of 120 memory; and yet but yaw neither, 12 in respect of his quick sail. But, in the verity of extolment, I take him to be a soul of great article; and his infusion of such dearth 13 and rareness, 1 * as, to make true diction 15 of him, his semblable 1 *^ is his mirror; and who else would trace him, his um- brage, 17 nothing more. Osric. Your lordship speaks most infallibly of him. Hamlet. The concernancy 18 sir? why do we 130 wrap the gentleman in our more rawer 19 breath? Osric. Sir? Moderately Constitution 3 perfect ^distinctions 5 gentle ^elegance ''guide of fash- ion Embodiment definition 10 loss n like taking an inventory 12 see footnote 13 scarity,dear- ness u qualities rare- ly found 15 description ^likeness ^shadow ^connection "double com- parative * The description of him suffers no loss in your telling— though to make a detailed list of all his good qualities would bewilder a skilled arithmetician, who would come as far from a complete enumeration of them as a boat holding an unsteady course (yaw) falls behind a fast-sailing vessel. Scene II] HAMLET 195 Horatio. Is't not possible to understand in another tongue? You will do 't, sir, really. Hamlet. What imports the nomination of this gentleman? Osric. Of Laertes? Horatio. His purse is empty already; all his golden words are spent. Hamlet. Of him, sir. 140 Osric. I know you are not ignorant Hamlet. I would you did, sir; yet, in faith, if you did, it would not much approve me. 1 Well, sir. Osric. You are not ignorant of what excel- lence Laertes is Hamlet. I dare not confess that, lest I should compare with him in excellence; but, to know a man well, were to know himself. Osric. I mean, sir, for his weapon; but in the 150 imputation 2 laid on him by them, 3 in his meed* he's unfellowed. 5 Hamlet. What's his weapon? Osric. Rapier and dagger. Hamlet. That's two of his weapons : but, well. Osric. The king, sir, hath wagered with him six Barbary horses: against the which he has imponed, 5 as I take it, six French rapiers and poniards," 1 with their assigns, 8 as girdle, hangers, 9 and so: three of the carriages, 10 in faith, are very 160 dear to fancy, very responsive 11 to the hilts, most delicate carriages, and of very liberal conceit 12 Hamlet. What call you the carriages? Horatio. I knew you must be edified by the margent, ere you had done. Osric. The carriages, sir, are the hangers. Hamlet. The phrase would be more germane 13 to the matter, if we could carry cannon by our sides: I would it might be hangers till then. But, on : six Barbary horses against six French swords, 170 their assigns, and three liberal-conceited car- ^o me much credit 2 repute z by his skill in arms *merit ^unrivalled ^staked 1 small daggers ^appendages s part of sword belt 10 hangers n well matched 12 elaborate de- sign 13 akin, appropriate 196 HAMLET [Act V riages; that's the French bet against the Danish. Why is this imponed, as you call it? Osric. The king, sir, hath laid, 1 that in a dozen passes between yourself and him, he shall not exceed you three hits: he hath laid on twelve for nine; and it would come to immediate trial, if your lordship would vouchsafe the answer. 2 Hamlet. How if I answer "no?" 180 Osric. I mean, my lord, the opposition of your person in trial. Hamlet. Sir, I will walk here in the hall: if it please his majesty, it is the breathing time 3 of day with me; let the foils be brought, the gen- tleman willing,* and the king hold his purpose, I will win for him, if I can; if not, I wilP gain nothing but my shame, and the odd hits. Osric. Shall I redeliver 6 you e'en so? Hamlet. To this effect, sir: after what flour- 190 ish your nature will. Osric. I commend my duty to your lordship. Hamlet. Yours, yours. — [Exit Osric] He does well to commend it himself; there are no tongues else for's 7 turn. Horatio. This lapwing runs away with the shell on his head. Hamlet. Thus has he (and many more of the same breed, that, I know, the drossy 9 age dotes on) only got the tune of the time, and outward 200 habit of encounter; a kind of yesty* collection, which carries them through and through the most fond 10 and winnowed 11 opinions; and do but blow them to their trial, the bubbles are out. Enter a Lord. Lord. My lord, his majesty commended him to you by young Osric, who brings back to him, that you attend 12 him in the hall: he sends to know, if your pleasure hold 13 to play with Laertes, or that 1 * you will take longer time. Wagered "^acceptance Hime for exer- cise Hfhe be willing 5 shall ^report 7 for his ^worthless frothy 10 foolish ^well sifted 12 await 13 hold good u if Scene II] HAMLET Hamlet I am constant to my purposes; they 210 follow the king's pleasure : if his fitness speaks, mine is ready; now, or whensoever, provided I be so able 1 as now. Lord. The king, and queen, and all are com- ing down. Hamlet. In happy time. 2 Lord. The queen desires you to use some gentle entertainment 3 to Laertes, before you fall to play. Hamlet. She well instructs me. [Exit Lord. 220 Horatio. You will lose this wager, my lord. Hamlet. I do not think so ; since he went into France, I have been in continual practice; I shall win at the odds. But thou wouldst not think, how ill all's here about my heart: but it is no matter. Horatio. Nay, good my lord Hamlet. It is but foolery;* but it is such a kind of gain-giving , 5 as would perhaps trouble a woman. 230 Horatio. If your mind dislike anything, obey it: I will forestall 6 their repair 7 hither, and say you^re not fit . 8 «wG -Jtt£tJ//tJL*j . ^tlamlet. Not a whit; we defy augury : there is ajspecial providence in the fall of a sparrow. If iTlre'now, 'tis not to come; if it be not to come, it will be now; if it be not now, yet it will come: the readiness is all: since no man has aught of what he leaves, what is't to leave betimes? Let be.* n Enter King, Queen, Laertes, Lords, Osric, and Attendants with foils, etc. King. Come, Hamlet, come, and take this hand from me. [The King puts the hand of Laertes into that of Hamlet. Hamlet. Give me your pardon, sir : I've done you wrong; 197 *fit for the con- test 2 at the right moment z act courteous- ly 4 a silly feeling ^misgiving ^anticipate 7 coming 8 ready ,t- tvL r**J~i 9 no matter 198 HAMLET [Act V 250 But pardon't, 1 as you are a gentleman. This presence 2 knows, And you must needs have heard, how I am punish' d 3 With sore distraction. What I have done, That might your nature, honour, and exception* Roughly awake, I here proclaim was madness. Was 't Hamlet wrong'd Laertes? Never Hamlet : If Hamlet from himself be ta'en away, And, when he 's not himself, does wrong Laertes, Then Hamlet does it not; Hamlet denies it. Who does it, then? His madness: if'tbeso, Hamlet is of the faction that is wrong'd; His madness is poor Hamlet's enemy. Sir, in this audience, Let my disclaiming from 5 a purposed evil* Free 7 me so far in your most generous thoughts, That I have shot mine arrow o'er the house, 3 And hurt my brother. Laertes. I am satisfied in nature, 3 260 Whose motive, in this case, should stir me most To my revenge : but in my terms of 10 honour, I stand aloof; and will 11 no reconcilement, 12 *Till by some elder masters, of known honour, I have a voice and precedent of peace, To keep my name 13 ungoredM But till that time, I do receive your offer'd love like love, And will not wrong it. Hamlet. I embrace it freely 15 And will this brother's wager frankly play. Give us the foils. Come on. Laertes. Come, one for me. ] Hamlet. I'll be your foil, Laertes: in mine ignorance Your skill shall, like a star i' the darkest night, Stick fiery off indeed. Laertes. You mock me, sir. Hamlet. No, by this hand. pardon it Hhese present 3 afflicted ^objection disavowing Hntentional wrong ''acquit 8 at random ^personally 10 as a matter of n will have ^reconciliation 13 honor u unstained lb tdke you at your word * "Until I have an opinion and precedent that will justify me in making peace." Scene II] HAMLET 199 King. Give them the foils, young Osric. — Cousin Hamlet, You know the wager? Hamlet. Very well, my lord; Your grace hath laid the odds o' the weaker side. King. I do not fear it ; I have seen you both : But since he is better'd, we have therefore odds. Laertes. This is too heavy, let me see another. Hamlet. This likes me well. 1 These foils have all a 2 length? Osric. Ay, my good lord. [ They prepare to play. King. Set me the stoups 3 of wine upon that table : If Hamlet give the first or second hit, *Or quit in answer of the third exchange, Let all the battlements their ordnance* fire; The king shall drink to Hamlet's better breath; And in the cup an union b shall he throw, Richer than that which four successive kings In Denmark's crown have worn. Give me the cups; And let the kettle 6 to the trumpet speak, The trumpet to the cannoneer without, The cannons to the heavens, the heavens to earth, "Now the king drinks to Hamlet!" — Come, begin;— _ And you, the judges, bear a wary 1 eye. Hamlet. Come on, sir. Laertes. Come, my lord. [They play. Hamlet. One. Laertes. No. Hamlet. ■ . Judgment. Osric. A hit, a very palpable* hit. Laertes. Well; — again. 280 290 ipleases, suits Hankards Gannon 5 pearl ^kettledrum ''watchful Evident * Pay off (Laertes) in meeting him at the third encounter. 200 HAMLET [Act V King. Stay; give me drink. — Hamlet, this pearl is thine; 300 Here's to thy health. Give him the cup. [Trumpets sound, and cannon shot off within. Hamlet. I'll play this bout first; set it by awhile. Come. — [They play] Another hit; what say you? Laertes. A touch, a touch, I do confess. King. Our son shall win. Queen. He's fat, and scant of breath. Here, Hamlet, take my napkin, 1 rub thy brows: handkerchief The queen carouses to thy fortune, 2 Hamlet. HHnks good Hamlet. Good madam! luck to thee King. Gertrude, do not drink. Queen. I will, my lord; I pray you, pardon me. King. [Aside] It is the poison'd cup; it is too late. 310 Hamlet. I dare not drink yet, madam; by and by. Queen. Come, let me wipe thy face. Laertes. My lord, I'll hit him now. King. I do not think 't. Laertes. [Aside] And yet it is almost against my conscience. Hamlet. Come, for the third, Laertes: you but dally; 3 : Hrifle I pray you, pass with your best violence; I am afeared you make a wanton* of me. ^port of Laertes. Say you so? come on. [They play. Osric. Nothing, neither way. Laertes. Have at you now. • 320 [Laertes wounds Hamlet; then in scuffling, they change rapiers, and Hamlet wounds Laertes. King. Part them; they are incensed. Hamlet. Nay, come again. [The Queen falls. Osric. Look to the queen there, ho! Horatio. They bleed on both sides. How is it, my lord? Scene II] HAMLET 201 Osric. How is it, Laertes? Laertes. Why, as a woodcock to mine own springe, 1 Osric; I am justly kill'd with mine own treachery. Hamlet How does the queen? v King. She swoons to see them bleed. Queen. No,*no, the drink, the drink, — my dear Hamlet ! — The drink, the drink; — I am poison'd. [Dies. Hamlet. O villainy! — Ho! let the door be locked:— 330 Treachery! seek it out. [Laertes falls. . Laertes. It is here, Hamlet: Hamlet, thou art slain; No medicine in the world can do thee good; In thee there is not half an hour of life; The treacherous instrument is in thy hand, Uribated* and envenom'd; 3 the foul practice Hath turn'd itself on me; lo, here I lie, Never to rise again: thy mother's poisoned: I can no more : — the king, the king's to blame. Hamlet. The point envenomed too! — 340 Then venom, to thy work. [Stabs the King. All. Treason! treason! King. O, yet defend me, friends: I am but hurt. Hamlet. Here, thou incestuous, murderous, damned Dane, Drink off this potion: — is thy union here? Follow my mother. [King dies. Laertes. He is justly served; It is a poison temper , d i by himself. Exchange forgiveness with me, noble Hamlet : Mine and my father's death come not upon thee; Nor thine on me! [Dies. Hamlet. Heaven make thee free 5 of it! I follow thee. 350 I am dead, Horatio. Wretched queen adieu! You that look pale and tremble at this chance, 6 That are but mutes or audience to this act, 2 unblunted 3 poisoned ^compounded 5 i.e. from the guilt e event 202 HAMLET [Act V Had I but time, — as this fell 1 sergeant, 2 Death, Is strict in his arrest, — O, I could tell you — But let it be. — Horatio, I am dead; Thou liv'st; report me and my cause aright To the unsatisfied. Horatio. Never believe it: I am more an antique 3 Roman than a Dane : Here's yet some liquor left. Hamlet. As thou'rt a man, Give me the cup: let go; by heaven I'll have 't. good Horatio, what a wounded name, Things standing thus unknown, shall live behind me! If thou didst ever hold me in thy heart, Absent thee from felicity a while,* And in this harsh world draw thy breath in pain, To tell my story. [March afar off, and shot within. What warlike noise is this? Osric. Young Fortinbras, with conquest come from Poland, To the ambassadors of England gives This warlike volley. 5 Hamlet. O, I die, Horatio; The potent poison quite o'er-crows 6 my spirit: 1 cannot live to hear the news from England ; But I do prophesy the election 'lights 7 On Fortinbras: he has my dying voice: 9 *So tell him, with the occurrents, 9 more and less, Which have solicited. 10 — The rest is silence. [Dies. Horatio. Now cracks a noble heart: — good night, sweet prince; And flights of angels sing thee to thy rest! [March within. Why does the drum come hither? Enter Fortinbras, the English Ambassadors, and others. Fortinbras. Where is this sight? 560 370 1 cruel ^sheriff's officer 3 ancient forego for a time the joys of heaven b fires this salute ^triumphs over ''alights 8 vote, support 9 events 10 roused (me) * Tell him that, and also inform him of all the events greater and smaller which have called for this deed of mine. Scene II] HAMLET 203 Horatio. What is it ye would see? 380 If aught of woe or wonder, cease your search. Fortinbras. *This quarry cries on havoc. O proud Death, What feast is toward 1 in thine eternal cell, That thou so many princes at a shot 2 So bloodily hast struck? 1st Ambassador. The sight is dismal; And our affairs from England come too late : The ears are senseless that should give us hearing, To tell him his commandment is fulfill'd, That Rosencrantz and Guildenstern are dead: Where should we have our thanks? Horatio. Not from his 3 mouth, 390 Had it the ability of life to thank you: He never gave commandment for their death. But since, so jump* upon this bloody question, You from the Polack wars, and you from Eng- land, Are here arrived, give order that these bodies High on a stage 5 be placed to the view; And let me speak to the yet unknowing world, How these things came about: so shall you hear Of carnal, bloody, and unnatural acts; Of accidental judgments, casual slaughters; 400 Of deaths put on 6 by cunning, and forced cause; And, in this upshot, 7 purposes mistook Fall'n on the inventors'* heads: all this can I Truly deliver.* Fortinbras. Let us haste to hear it, And call the noblest to the audience. For me, with sorrow I embrace my fortune: I have some rights of memory in this kingdom, Which now to claim my vantage 10 doth invite me. Horatio. Of that I shall have also cause to speak, And from his 11 mouth whose voice will draw on more: 12 410 But let this same be presently 13 performed, Hmminent 2 with one shot Hhe king's *just ^raised platform ^brought about ''final issue ^contrivers ^narrate 10 position of advantage 11 Hamlet's 12 influence more people immediately This heap of dead bodies cries out against this wanton slaughter. 204 HAMLET [Act V Even while men's minds are wild : lest more mis- chance, On plots and errors, happen. Fortinbras. Let four captains Bear Hamlet, like a soldier, to the stage; For he was likely, had he been put on, 1 To have proved most royally : and, for his pas- sage, The soldiers' music, and the rites of war, Speak 2 loudly for him. Take up the bodies: such a sight as this Becomes the field, but here shows much amiss. 420 Go, bid the soldiers shoot. 3 [A dead march. Exeunt, bearing away the dead bodies; after which a peal of ordnance is shot off. ^'proved l (let them) 3 discharge a volley in honor of the dead NOTES Act I. Scene I Line 2. Unfold yourself. Declare who you are. 3. Long live the king. The password for the night. 15. This ground. This country, i. e. Denmark. Liegemen to the Dane. Loyal subjects to the king of Denmark. 16. Give you good-night. Either (1) God give you, or (2) I give you. 19. A piece of him. Something like him. 29. Approve our eyes. Confirm what we said we saw. 36. Yond same star. Yond is a demonstrative pronoun. Star, the Great Bear, which pivots, as it were, around the pole-star. 42. Scholar. Having a knowledge of Latin, and able to exorcise the Ghost by adjuration. 44. Harrows. Tortures, by rending my heart, as a harrow tears up the ground. 45. It would he spoke to. There was a superstitious idea that a ghost should be addressed before it could speak. 46. Usurp 'st. To take possession of and use without any right. The usurpation is twofold: (1) of the time of midnight; (2) of the form and person of the king. 48. Buried Denmark. The late king of Denmark, Hamlet's father, now dead and buried. 57. Sensible. What is apparent to the senses. 63. Sledded Polack. Polander using a sledge. 68. The gross and scope of my opinion. I cannot say exactly, but to speak generally, my opinion is. 72. So. As valiant. 85. This side of our known world. The eastern hemisphere. 87. Law and heraldry. Law = civil law. Heraldry = the formal- ities of chivalry. 88. With his life. I. e. if he fell in combat. 90. Moiety competent. A portion; an equivalent portion of terri- tory. 205 206 HAMLET 94. Carriage of the article design'd. The meaning of, the agreement drawn up between them. 96. Unimproved. Untried, not taught by experience. 98. Shark'd up a list of lawless resolutes. Gathered together a band of desperadoes. 99. For food and diet. I. e. no pay given; they enlisted for their keep alone. 100. Hath a stomach in't. Affords an opportunity for the display of courage. 101. Our state. The rulers of the state. 107. Homage. Literally, roomage, or stowage (rummage) of a ship's cargo in the hold; hence, the hurry and bustle of loading a ship. 109. Well may it sort. Agree. Bernardo and Horatio ascribe the appearance of the ghost as indicating his concern in the impending war. They have no suspicion that the king had been murdered. Thus we learn by implication that the murder had been kept secret. 112. Mote. A small thing, i. e. the appearance of the ghost, but a portent of great troubles. 114. Mightiest Julius. Julius Caesar, the famous Eoman general, who was assassinated by conspirators. See also note III. ii. 111. 119. Neptune. The god of the sea; so "Neptune's empire" means the ocean. See also note III. ii. 157. 120. Doomsday. Death. The day of judgment. 122. Harbingers. Forerunners. 125. Climatures. Particular districts. 127. I'll cross it. Cross the ghost in his course. It was popularly supposed that misfortune would befall anyone who crossed the path of a ghost. 136. Up-hoarded. . . . Extorted, etc. The popular superstition was that if a man had wrongfully obtained wealth, and concealed it during his life, his spirit would have no rest until it had revealed the place of concealment. 140. Partisan. A long-handled weapon usually so constructed as to fill the office of an axe and a bayonet. 154. Extravagant and erring. "Wandering abroad and straying" in the original meaning of the Latin extravagare and errare. 162. Planets strike. Planets were supposed to influence human life. Especially were they supposed to injure at night. 166. Russet. Keddish, rosy. It may be noted that the first streak of dawn is gray, not red. NOTES 207 Act I. Scene II 4. Brow of 'woe. Woeful brow. 18. A weak supposal of our worth. Forming the estimate that our power is weak. 21. Colleagued, etc. Fortinbras has two thoughts in mind: (1) the weakness of the kingdom of Denmark; (2) the hope of gaining advantage. The two thoughts combined (colleagued) lead him to make his demands upon the king. 29. Bed-rid. Confined to his bed, unable to take part in the war. 31. In that. Inasmuch as. 32. Proportions. The different parts of the army, i. e. horsemen, infantry, etc., being supplied in due proportions. 33. Subject. Collective, his subjects. 39. Commend your duty. Give evidence of your readiness to perform your duty. 44. Speak of reason. Make a reasonable request. 47. Native to. Closely connected by nature. The context shows that Polonius supported Claudius in his election as king. 53. Coronation. Both Hamlet and Laertes had come to Elsinore; Hamlet from Wittenberg for the funeral of his father, Laertes from Paris to join in the coronation festivities. Laertes now desires to return to Paris, and Hamlet to Wittenberg. See note on 1. 113, p. 208. 62. Take thy fair hour. Enjoy yourself in your youth. 63. Best graces, etc. May your accomplishments and gracious man- ners assist you to pass the time in Paris as you please. 64. Cousin. Hamlet was his stepson; but Shakespeare uses "cousin" to express any relationship. 65. Kin. Of the same race. Kind. Of the same nature. 67. Too much i' the sun. The sunshine of the king's presence. (Play on words continued from 1. 65.) 68. Nighted colour. Dark as night. Hamlet is in mourning for his father, while the rest of the court are gaily dressed because of the coronation. 70. Vailed lids. Downcast eyelids. To vail •= to lower. 74. Common. Contrasted with particular in line 75. 77. Inky cloak. Black like ink. 78. Customary suits. May mean (1) black suits usually worn as a sign of mourning, or (2) the suits Hamlet was accustomed to wear. 92. Obsequious sorrow. Dutiful sorrow, as of a son mourning a father; and also sorrow befitting funeral ceremonies. 208 HAMLET 95. Incorrect. Unsubdued, unsubmissive; a participle. (See Gram- matical notes, p. 239.) 99. Any the most, etc. Anything the most commonly perceived. 109. The most immediate. The next heir to the throne. The remark is intended to conciliate Hamlet and to reconcile him to his exclusion from the throne. 113. Wittenberg. The university was not founded until 1502, therefore the mention of it is an anachronism. It was famous in Shakespeare's day in connection with Martin Luther. It was a favorite university with the Danes. 114. Retrograde to our desire. Contrary to our wish. 115. Bend you. Change your mind and decide to stay. We 6peak of following our "bent" or "inclination." 118. Lose her prayers. Entreat in vain. 124. In grace whereof. In honor of Hamlet's acquiescence. 125. Denmark drinks. Johnson remarks on the tendency of the king to feast and drink whenever occasion presented itself. 126. Cannon. An anachronism. 127. Rouse. A deep draught. 132. Canon. A religious law. Self -slaughter. The first reference to Hamlet's idea of suicide. Cf. III. i. 56, p. 128. 134. Uses. The ordinary habits of life. 140. Hyperion. A character of Greek mythology, a type of manly beauty. A satyr, in classical mythology, was a sylvan deity, typifying roughness and bestiality. See also III. iv. 56, p. 151. 149. Niobe. In Greek mythology, the daughter of Tantalus and the wife of Amphion, King of Thebes. She boasted that her children were more numerous and more beautiful than were those of Leto, mother of Apollo and Artemis. In revenge Apollo and Artemis killed all Niobe 's children. The portrayal of Niobe 's grief has ever been a favor- ite subject for artists. 150. Discourse of reason. A beast lacks intellect and is thus without the power to reason. 153. Hercules. A character in Greek mythology, renowned for his great strength and daring exploits. 155. The flushing. I. e. had ceased to produce redness. 158. Hold my tongue. Mark Hamlet's reticence in public on his mother's shame. 162. Change. Exchange. Hamlet will change places with Horatio. He will be Horatio's "servant," Horatio will be his "friend." NOTES 209 179. Thrift. A thrifty arrangement. Spoken in sarcasm. 181. Dearest foe. My most bitter enemy. Shakespeare uses ' ' dear ' ' as having an intensive force. 199. Cap-a-pe\ From head to foot. From the Latin words caput (head) and pes (foot). 203. Truncheon. Staff of command. 229. Beaver. The lower front part of the helmet, which could be raised to expose the lower part of the face. 241. Sable-silver 'd. Dark hair tinged with gray. 247. Tenable in your silence. Eegarded as still to be kept secret. 255. Foul play. Treachery, not murder. Act I. Scene III 2. As the "winds, etc. Let me hear from you whenever the wind is favorable, and a vessel sails for France. 6. Fashion. Changeable and temporary as a fashion in dress. Toy in blood. The passing fancy of youth, not a deep affection. 7. Primy nature. Nature in the springtime. 10. No more but so? Nothing more than that. 16. The virtue of his will. His honest intention in love. 22. Choice. Hamlet, as a prince, is not free to choose his wife. His choice must be approved by the state. 63. Hoops of steel. Bind them to thyself with bands as strong as steel. 64. Dull thy palm. Do not make thyself common by being friendly with every one. 71. Not expressed in fancy. Not marked by eccentricity in style. 76. For loan oft loses both itself and friend. There is a double loss: (1) of the money lent; (2) of the friend to whom it is lent. 86. Shall keep the key, etc. I will remember your advice and follow it till you release me from obedience. 90. Marry. An oath: "By (the Virgin) Mary." 107. Sterling. True, pure; used of gold. The word is an abbrevia- tion of Esterling, a name for the Eastern merchants, who dealt in pure money, i. e. money of pure gold and exact weight. Polonius suggests that Hamlet's vows are not to be regarded as of true metal; they are unreliable. Tender yourself more dearly. Kegard or value yourself more highly. 108. Crack the wind. To overstrain, e. g. to break a horse's wind by overdriving. 210 HAMLET 113. Given countenance. Has strengthened his declaration of love by vows of constancy. 115. Woodcocks. Foolish birds, easily caught. The phrase is pro- verbial for deceiving a simple fellow. 125. Larger tether. A longer rope, giving an animal more space for movement. Hamlet, as if tethered with a longer rope, has more liberty of action than Ophelia. 127. Brokers. Go-betweens, negotiators. 133. Slander. Disgrace. Act I. Scene IV 9. Up-spring. Various explanations of this word are given. According to Elze, it was "the last and consequently the wildest dance at the old German merry-makings. ' ' 12. Triumph. Sarcastic, representing the drinking of a pledge as some victorious event. 19. Swinish phrase. They speak of us as being no better than swine. 20. Soil our addition. Sully our title by thus comparing us to swine. 22. The pith and marrow of our attribute. "The best and most valuable part of the praise that would be otherwise attributed to us." — Johnson. 32. Nature's livery. A natural defect, bestowed by nature at birth. Fortune's star. An accidental defect through the influence of cir- cumstances. A person's life or fortune was supposed to be influenced by the stars. 35. General censure. Public opinion. 36. The dram of base. A slight admixture of evil. 40. Spirit of health. A saved spirit, i. e. a good spirit. 43. Questionable shape. Variously rendered: (1) in a form inviting question, (2) capable of being questioned, (3) arousing questions in Ham- let's mind. 47. Canonized. Formally declared a saint according to the canons of the Roman church. 49. Inurn'd. Entombed. Urn, here = grave. 53. Glimpses. The moonbeams struggling from behind the clouds. The ghost appears during these glimpses. 54. We fools of nature. "We" should be "us," objective after "making," — making us the sport of nature. NOTES 211 74. Deprive your sovereignty of reason. Take away the control of reason, the ruling principle of the mind, i. e. deprive you of the faculty of reason. 84. Neniean lion. The Nemean lion inhabited the valley of Nemea in Argolis. Eurytheus ordered Hercules to slay the beast as one of his twelve labors. After using his club and arrows in vain, Hercules strangled the lion with his hands. Act I. Scene V 2. My hour. Cock-crow, when ghosts must return to the lower regions. 10. To walk the night. To pass the night in wandering on earth. 11. To fast, etc. One of the supposed punishments in hell. 12. Days of nature. The period of my natural life. 13. Burnt and purged away. An allusion to the doctrine of purga- tory. 16. Harrow. To grievously distress. 20. Fretful porcupine. The porcupine, when irritated, erects its quills. 21. Eternal blazon. A revelation concerning the spirit world. Blazon = the blowing of a trumpet. 33. Lethe. A river of the lower world. The souls that drank of it3 waters immediately forgot their previous existence, and thus it became known as the river of oblivion. 37. Process. The full account of. "Perhaps here the sense of an official narrative, coming nearly to the meaning of the French proces verbal." (Clarendon Press.) 46. Hebenon. Oil made from henbane, which, according to Pliny, if dropped into the ear affects the brain. 79. Distracted globe. (1) The troubled world or (2) a bewildered brain. In acting the play Hamlet puts his hand upon his head. 80. Table. Writing tablet of slate or ivory. 97. Hillo, etc. Hamlet, desiring his friends to approach, calls to them in terms which falconers use to bring back the hunting hawk. 130. Upon my sword. The hilt of a sword formed a cross, and oaths were often taken upon it. 132. Truepenny. A familiar phrase for "an honest fellow." Ac- cording to Collier it was "a mining term indicating where true ore was to be found." 212 HAMLET 147. As a stranger give it welcome. Treat it as you would a stranger, and politely comply with its request. 154. Antic. May mean either: (1) strange, fantastic or (2) dis- guised, with reference to a grotesquely masked person in a masquerade. Act II. Scene I 8. Keep. Lodge, live. 26. You may go so far. You may charge him with such vices, but do not attribute to him anything worse. 32. Unreclaimed. Untamed, a term in falconry. Eeclaim = to call back the falcon. 36. A fetch of warrant. A device warranted to succeed in its object; or it may mean a device for which one has warrant or approval. The Quartos read "fetch of wit," a cunning device. 43. In this consequence. With a reply somewhat as follows. 60. We of wisdom and of reach. We persons of wisdom and fore- sight, i. e. we wise, f arseeing persons. 61. Assays of bias. Indirect attempts. A metaphor from the game of bowls. The balls are weighted on one side so that they cannot run a direct course but must curve, and the tendency to deviate from the straight line is called bias. In the game the player does not aim directly at the Jack, but so that the ball may travel in a curve, the bias acting and bringing the ball round to the Jack. By this means the player is able to control the ball so as to pass round any obstacle lying in the direct path. What we now call the Jack was called the "mistress" in Shake- speare's time. 67. Observe his inclination in yourself. This line has been variously interpreted: (1) Your own inclinations will enable you to judge what his bent is likely to be; (2) Shape your course according to his inclina- tions; (3) Observe for yourself, do not trust to the reports of others. 69. Ply his music. Let him take his own course freely without inter- ference. 76. Down-gyved. Hanging down over his ankles like gyves or fet- ters. 86. Falls to. Sets to eagerly, i. e. as a hungry man to food. 111. To cast beyond ourselves in our opinions. To be over-sus- picious, over-cautious. This is the falling age. The young lack discre- tion (1. 113), i. e. are not sufficiently cautious. NOTES 213 Act II. Scene II 5. Transformation. Complete change in manner and appearance. 32. And be commanded. Beady to carry out any commission you (the king) may give us. 52. Fruit. Dessert. As the dinner is followed by the dessert, the rich- est part of the meal, so the message of the Ambassadors from Norway will be followed, by the more important news that Polonius has to tell the king regarding Hamlet. 56. The main. The principal cause. 57. Our o'er-hasty marriage. The queen shrewdly divines the real cause of Hamlet's behavior. 58. Sift. Examine thoroughly, and learn the truth. 61. Upon our first. At our first interview with him, when we made your wishes known to him. 67. Falsely borne in hand. Trifled with and deceived. Fortinbras had taken advantage of the advanced age and feebleness of the King of Norway. 71. Assay of arms. Test of war. 78. This enterprise. The body of troops engaged in the expedition. 79. Regards of safety and allowance. Guarantees for the security of the country, and conditions on which the troops shall be allowed to pass through Denmark. 81. More consider'd. When we have had full time for further con- sideration. 113. Bosom. Ladies had a pocket in the front of their dress in which they carried love-letters or anything they prized. 120. Ill at these numbers. Unskilled in writing verses. 127. More above. Moreover. 137. If I had play'd the desk, or table-book. Table-book = writing tablet. A sentence variously interpreted: (1) If I had acted as the agent of their correspondence; (2) If I had minutely recorded their cor- respondence; (3) If I had been like a memorandum book, of no intelligence, simply receiving impressions, and not communicating them to others. 163. Loose. Let loose, as one lets a dog loose. 164. Arras. Tapestry, so called from Arras, a town in France, where it was manufactured. The stage tapestry hung some distance from the walls, so that Polonius could readily conceal himself behind it. 176. Fishmonger. One sent to fish out any secret. 214 HAMLET 227. These tedious old fools. The expression of Hamlet's relief at finding himself free from the presence of Polonius. He is his natural self for a moment, but, on the entrance of Eosencrantz and Guildenstern, resumes his assumed manner. 258. Thinking makes it so. Compare — Stone walls do not a prison make, Nor iron bars a cage ; Minds innocent and quiet take That for a hermitage. — Lovelace. 311. Moult no feather. Suffer no loss of honor; lose none of their dignity. Allusion may be "to dislodgement of feathers from the helmets of knights at tilting matches." 320. Congregation of vapours. Collection of misty clouds hiding the face of the sun. 327. Quintessence. The fifth essence. (Lat., quintus, the fifth.) The ancients recognized four elements — earth, air, fire, and water. After these had been extracted from any substance, they supposed there remained the pure essence — the fifth. 344. Tickled o' the sere. This phrase describes persons easily moved to laughter. The metaphor is taken from the lock of a gun, the sere being the catch which prevents the hammer from falling', and which is released by the pulling of the trigger. 346. The blank verse shall halt. This may mean: (1) the lady shall have the full liberty to express herself even if she break the metre; (2) Elze suggests that it refers to the omission of oaths, forbidden by statute, which would spoil the metre. 353. Inhibition. An allusion to an occurrence which had taken place in England. Several companies of actors in Shakespeare's time had been deprived of their license to act in established theaters. The passage is often referred to in assigning the date of the play. 362. Aiery of children. Aiery = brood. A reference to the young singing lads of the Chapel Eoyal of St. Paul's, who performed plays to the detriment of the regular actors. 363. Little eyases. Nestlings or unfledged birds. Cry out on the top of question. Shout out at the top of their voices. 366. Common stages. The theaters where the regular actors played. 379. Tarre them to controversy. Urge them on to quarrel, as one sets dogs on to fight. 387. Hercules, and his load too. Probably an allusion to the Globe Theater, the sign of which was Hercules carrying the globe. Shakespeare infers that the boys carried away much of the patronage of that theater. NOTES 215 392. In little. In miniature. 406. Handsaw. A corruption of "heron-saw," a heron. 419. Boscius. The most celebrated actor in Rome, B. C. 134-62. He was considered so perfect in his profession that it became the fashion to apply the name Eoscius to anyone who had become particularly distin- guished in dramatic art. 422. Buz, buz! Nonsense, nonsense. 424. Then came each actor, etc. Probably a line from some old ballad. 428. Scene individable. A play that observed the unities of place. 429. Poem unlimited. A play in which the unity of place was not observed. Seneca. The famous Eoman philosopher, tutor of Nero, and his chief adviser during the early part of his reign. He committed suicide at Nero's command, A. D. 65. He is here mentioned as the great authority on tragic drama. 430. Plautus. The celebrated Eoman comic poet is mentioned as the greatest authority on comedy. 432. O Jephthah, etc. Jephthah was one of the judges of Israel, who delivered the people from the oppression of the Ammonites. He vowed to sacrifice to God the first thing to meet him on his return from battle, should he be victorious over the Ammonites. Upon his return he was met by his daughter. "He did to her what he had vowed to do." — Judges xi:39. 448. Pious chanson. A kind of Christmas carol, containing some Scripture story in loose rhymes. Usually sung in the streets. 452. Valanced. Fringed with a beard. 454. Young lady. Women 's parts were played by boys. 456. Chopine. A high shoe worn by Venetian ladies to give them the appearance of being tall. The boy actors wore these to add to their height. 458. Cracked within the ring. "There was a ring or circle on the coin, within which the sovereign's head was placed; if the crack extended from the edge beyond this ring the coin was rendered unfit for currency. ' ' — Douce. 460. French falconers. Poor sportsmen. The French falconers were not particular what birds they shot, game or not game. 468. Caviare to the general. Caviare is the prepared roe of the Bus- sian sturgeon. It is considered a delicacy by those of cultivated taste, but is not palatable to others. The meaning is, that the play was a treat to educated people, but was lost upon the general public. 216 HAMLET 470. Cried in the top of mine. Whose judgments had more authority than mine. 471. Well digested in the scenes. The scenes were well arranged so that the audience could readily follow the plot. 479. tineas. In the Mneid of Virgil, this famous Trojan hero recounts to Dido, the queen of Carthage, the tale of the capture and destruction of Troy. Dido. The founder and queen of Carthage. When JEneas, by the command of the gods, deserted her, she committed suicide. 483. Pyrrhus. The son of Achilles. In the siege of Troy he was one of those concealed in the wooden horse, and, when the city was cap- tured, was ruthless in the slaughter of the Trojans. Hyreanian beast. The tiger, a native of Hyrcania, a country on the south and south-east shores of the Caspian Sea. 490. Total gules. All bloody. Gules, a term in heraldry = red. Trick 'd. A term in heraldry = a description by drawing or painting. 492. Parching streets. The heat from the burning houses had dried the blood of Pyrrhus. 495. O'er-sized with coagulate gore. Pyrrhus appears as if smeared with dried blood. 496. Pyrrhus. See note on 1. 483 above. 497. Priam. King of Troy. When that city was captured by the Greeks he was slain by Pyrrhus, son of Achilles. 507. Ilium. Troy. So called from its founder, Ilus, son of Tros. 513. Painted tyrant. A tyrant in a picture. The sword is drawn but does not descend. 514. Neutral. Indifferent. His will is the one side; the matter, i. e. the sword stroke, the other. 522. Cyclops. The Cyclops were a mythical race of monsters living in Sicily. They were commanded by Polyphemus, and were assistants of Vulcan. As such they forged the armor of gods and heroes. 526. Fortune. The goddess Fortune. 528. Fellies. Felloes; the pieces of wood composing the rim of a wheel into which the spokes are inserted, and the whole bound together by the tire. 534. Hecuba. The wife of Priam, King of Troy, who was slain by Pyrrhus before her eyes. 536. Mobled. Muffled up. 564. God's bodykins. An oath, "by God's body." 605. Muddy-mettled. Dull spirited, irresolute. 606. John-a-dreams. John the dreamer. NOTES 217 616. Pigeon-liver 'd. Timid as a pigeon. The liver was supposed to be the seat of courage and passion. Gall. Courage. 619. This slave's offaL The King's refuse. Hamlet is reproaching himself for his lack of courage in not having slain the usurper, and given his dead body to the birds of prey. Act III. Scene I 1. Drift of circumstance. Eoundabout method. 43. Gracious. Polonius is now addressing the King. 48. Sugar o'er. Like a pill coated with sugar to make it pleasant to the palate, and to disguise its true taste. 62. Bub. Taken from the game of bowls. Any impediment or obstacle in the course of the bowl is termed a rub. (See Note II. i. 61.) 72. Quietus. A legal term denoting the acquittance given by the sheriff as the official discharge of an account. 73. Bare bodkin. A bodkin is an old term for a small dagger. Bare — unsheathed. 81. Native hue. Natural color. 83. Pith. Pitch, i. e. the highest point of a falcon's flight. 113. Paradox. An assertion contrary to general experience, usually con- tradictory in terms and apparently opposed to common sense. 148. Amble. To walk with mincing, effeminate steps. 149. Nick-name. Literally, an additional name. An eJce-name, i. e. a name given to eke out another name. 158. Glass of fashion. The mirror in which was reflected all that was in the best taste. Mould of form. The model for all others. 161. Music vows. Vows sweet as music to Ophelia 's ears. 164. Blown youth. Full blown. Hamlet was in his prime, thirty years of age. 171. Disclose. The revelation. Brood, hatch, disclose, all refer to the hen hatching her chickens. "Disclose" is the technical term for the moment when the young bird peeps through the shell and discloses itself. 175. Tribute. Probably an allusion to the Danegelt, a tax originally levied in Saxon times to provide the money to buy off the Danish invaders. It was first levied in the reign of Ethelred the Unready, A. D. 994. 177. Variable objects. Variable = various. The king is suggesting that a change of scene will be the best cure for Hamlet's indisposition. 190. Find him. Find out his secret. 218 HAMLET Act III. Scene II 11. Pcriwlg-pated. Periwig (Fr. perruque), a wig. It was the cus- tom for actors to wear wigs, though wigs did not come into general use till the reign of Charles II. 15. Termagant. An imaginary being supposed by the Crusaders to have been one of the Saracen deities. It was a character frequently represented in the mystery plays, and was conspicuously a ranting part. In these plays, the degree of rant was the measure of the wickedness portrayed. 16. Herod. King of Judsea. He was notorious for cruelty and tyr- anny. Herod was one of the principal characters in the old mystery plays, and was represented as a furious tyrant. 31. In your allowance. By your own admission. 38. Journeymen. Men working and paid by the day. 44. Speak no more, etc. It was the custom of the clown to improvise jokes (the modern "gag" in a play). Shakespeare is probably hitting at Tarleton, an actor of his day, who was notorious for his power of "gagging." 66. Candied tongue. Candied, coated over. The hypocrite's tongue coated with flattery. 75. Blood and judgment. "According to the doctrine of the four humours, desire and confidence were seated in the blood, and judgment in the phlegm, and the due mixtures of the humours made a perfect character. ' ' — Johnson. 82. One scene. The lines that Hamlet had written for the actors. See II. ii. 576, p. 124. 85. The very comment of thy soul. Observe the king with all your powers of observation. 87. Unkennel. Bring to light — i. e. as a dog is brought out of his kennel into the open. 90. Vulcan. The Boman god of fire. He is said to have had his workshop under Mount Aetna in Sicily. The Cyclops were his workmen. Stithy. The forge or smithy of a blacksmith. 99. The chameleon's dish. The chameleon was popularly supposed to feed on air. 100. Promise-crammed. Stuffed with promises. Claudius had prom- ised Hamlet that he should be "his son" (I. ii. 64), i. e. his heir to the throne. 105. University. An allusion to the practice of performing plays in the college halls. NOTES 219 111. I' the Capitol. Caesar was not assassinated in the Capitol, but in the Curia Pompeii, at the foot of Pompey 's statue. Shakespeare in the plays Hamlet, Julius Ccesar, and Antony and Cleopatra, alluding to Caesar 's death, places the scene of his murder in the Capitol. Brutus. The chief of the conspirators against Caesar. He was a descendant of the famous Brutus who headed the people against the Tar- quins, destroyed kingly power, and established the Eoman republic. Brutus with Cassius and other conspirators was defeated at Philippi by Antony and Octavius and perished in the battle. 125. Jig-maker. A composer or player of jigs. Jig was a ludicrous ballad, or a merry dance accompanying it. 132. Suit of sables. Hamlet intends to say that he will cast aside his suit of mourning and will wear magnificent garments trimmed with fur, and be dressed as the rest of the court. 138. Hobby-horse. A character in the May-games and Morris-dances. It was represented by a man with the figure of a horse fastened round his waist, the man 's legs being concealed by a long foot-cloth. 141. Miching mallecho. Miching — skulking about for some sinister purpose. Mallecho ■= mischief. Hence, Miching mallecho = mischief or the spirit of mischief on the watch for an opportunity to do some one harm. 152. Posy of a ring. A motto in verse inscribed inside a ring. 156. Phoebus. The god of the sun. He was supposed to drive the chariot of the sun from east to west. Thirty times would indicate a full month. 157. Tellus' orbed ground. The Greek goddess, Gas or Ge, the per- sonification of the earth. At Eome the earth was worshipped under the name of Tellus. Tellus ' orbed ground == the earth. 158. Borrowed sheen. The light of the moon. The moon shines by the reflected light of the sun. 160. Hymen. The god of marriage. 168. Hold quantity. Are in proportion. 171. As my love is sized, etc. My fear is in proportion to the quan- tity of my love. 217. Anchor's cheer. The fare of a hermit. Anchor (shortened form of "anchorite"), hermit. 235. Mouse-trap. Hamlet names the play thus because it is intended to entrap the guilty conscience of the king. 241. Let the galled jade, etc. A proverbial expression. The meaning is "Let the guilty fear." (See Glossary under galled.) 220 HAMLET Withers. That part of the horse between the shoulders, which takes the strain off the collar, or supports the saddle. 244. Chorus. A character, as in the old Greek Plays, whose part it was to explain the action of the Play. 247. Puppets (Fr. poupee, a doll). The allusion is to puppet shows, common in Shakespeare's day. These were explained to the spectators by an interpreter, who sat upon the stage for that purpose. Hamlet cynically likens Ophelia and her lover to dolls. 253. Confederate season. Time or opportunity. The opportunity for the ill-deed is represented as aiding or assisting the murderer, and so becoming his accomplice. 255. Hecate. A mysterious divinity represented as a threefold god- dess with three bodies or three heads. She is said to have been: (1) Selene or Luna in heaven; (2) Artemis or Diana on earth; (3) Proserpine or Proserpina in the lower world. From being an infernal deity she came to be regarded as a spectral being who taught sorcery and witchcraft. 260. Extant. In existence, and so a true story. 269. Why, let the stricken deer go weep. When badly wounded, the deer is said to retire from the herd to weep and die. So the king flees to hide his guilty face. 270. The hart ungalled. The uninjured deer. This represents Ham- let, who, innocent of crime, remains to enjoy the rest of the Play. 273. This. This Play of mine. Forest of feathers. An allusion to the actors of Shakespeare's time, who wore gaudy dresses, and in their caps sported plumes of feathers. 274. Turn Turk. Change from Christian to infidel = to become a renegade or traitor. A common phrase of the period equivalent to the modern "go to the bad." 275. Provincial roses. Eosettes or ribbons worn on the shoes. The name is either from Provence or Provins, the latter about forty miles from Paris. Razed shoes. Shoes cut to a distinctive pattern. 276. A fellowship in a cry of players. A partnership in a company of actors. Cry = a pack of hounds: hence "a theatrical company." The word is used in hunting to signify a pack of hounds chosen so that their united barking may make a musical cry. 277. Half a share. An allusion to the custom of the day, when actors were paid not by salaries, but by shares of the receipts, according to their abilities. NOTES 221 279. Damon. The reference is to the proverbial friendship of Damon and Pythias, who lived in the fourth century B. C. The latter plotted against the life of the tyrant Dionysius of Syracuse. Ke was condemned to die, and Damon offered to take his place till Pythias could arrange hia affairs, and agreed to die should his friend not appear upon the day appointed. Pythias, delayed, did not arrive until a few moments before the hour of execution. Dionysius was so struck by the fidelity of the friends that he pardoned Pythias, and begged to be admitted into their friendship. 280. Realm dismantled. Hamlet suggests that Denmark had been robbed of a king (his father), who could be compared to Jove, and was replaced by his uncle, whom he styles a peacock. 281. Jove. Jupiter, the king of gods. 283. Rhymed. The rhyme to "was" (1. 280) would be "ass." Horatio suggests that this word would well describe Claudius. 284. The ghost's word. The conduct of the conscience-stricken Claudius has convinced Hamlet that the tale told him by his father's ghost is true. 290. Recorder. A kind Of flageolet or flute. Here it refers to those playing upon that instrument. 306. Purgation. Here used in a double sense: (1) Legal, to clear oneself on oath; (2) Medical, adopted to cure the patient. 309. Frame. Connected order. The words "start not so wildly" and "tame" suggest an allusion to the tying in a frame of a restive horse when it is being shod. 341. Pickers and stealers. These hands. "To keep my hands from picking and stealing." 344. You bar the door, etc. You deny yourself freedom from your Borrows by refusing to tell your cause of grief to your friend. 354. Go about. Attempt. To recover the wind. A hunting term. The hunter lays his snare to the leeward of the game. Then, from the windward side, he stalks the animal, which scenting him endeavors to escape to leeward, and is snared. 366. Ventages. The air-holes in the pipe of the recorder. Stops (1. 359) signifies the stopping of the holes with the fingers, thus produc- ing the different notes on the instrument. 380. 'Sblood. An oath, "God's blood." 392. Backed like a weasel. Its back is shaped like the back of a weasel. Polonius is so bent on humoring Hamlet that he pretends to see a likeness to the back of a weasel in the hump of a camel. 222 HAMLET 396. They fool me to the top of my bent. They humor me in what- ever I say. Hamlet is thus assured that he is regarded as being mad. It is a common practice in the treatment of lunatics to appear to agree with everything they say, in order to soothe, not irritate them. 407. Soul of Nero. Nero, the infamous Eoman emperor, a monster of vice and cruelty. He gained his imperial purple through the intrigues of his mother, Agrippina, who exercised great influence and authority during the early years of his reign. Nero, becoming weary of his mother's influence, and urged by his mistress, Poppaea, caused Agrippina to be assassinated. Hamlet prays lest his wrath at his own father's murder should lead him to follow Nero's example and put the queen, his mother, to death. 412. Give them seals. To affix seals to a document is to give it legal validity. So Hamlet prays that he may not in impulse be led to give effect to his words by committing the crime of matricide. Act III. Scene III 11. Single and peculiar life. Single life, the life of an individual. Peculiar life, that he is a private person, with no public issues dependent upon his life. Eosencrantz is comparing Hamlet, a private individual, with the king, upon whose life the whole state, in a certain degree, depends. 15. The cease of majesty. The king dying. 20. Mortised. Joined with a mortise. To mortise is to cut out a portion of one piece of wood to receive a corresponding portion called the tenon or holder of another piece. Thus the two pieces are firmly united to each other. 21. Annexment. That which is annexed. A word not found else- where in Shakespeare. 24. Arm you. Prepare yourselves. 25. Fear. Hamlet, the cause of the king's fear. 30. Process. The full recital. Tax him home. Thoroughly probe or examine him, and get the whole truth out of it. 34. Of vantage. From a position of advantage. Polonius will have the advantage of Hamlet in being able from his place of concealment to hear all that passes between Hamlet and his mother. 38. Primal eldest curse. The curse of Cain. Cain was the eldest son of Adam, and the first murderer. NOTES 223 62. The action lies. A legal phrase meaning "there is ground for commencing the suit at law." 64. Even to the teeth, etc. Face to face with. 69. Limed soul. A soul entangled in sin, as a bird caught in bird- lime. The more it struggles the more it becomes smeared with the sticky substance. 81. Full of bread. Not fasting. 84. In our circumstance. Judging from the circumstances, and accord- ing to our usual way of reasoning. Act III. Scene IV 4. I'll silence me e'en here. I'll stop talking at this point (though I could say more). 23. Dead, for a ducat. I will wager a ducat that he is dead. 25. Is it the king? Hamlet naturally thinks it is the king who has concealed himself behind the tapestry. He acts upon impulse, but it is clear (see 1. 32) he intends to kill his uncle. 36. Penetrable. Capable of receiving moral impressions. 37. Braz'd. Become hard like brass. 38. Proof. Impenetrable. 44. Sets a blister. Brands as a wanton. Such persons were liable to be branded on the forehead. 48. Rhapsody of words. Confused utterance of words. 52. Index. Prologue or preface to a play. The index was formerly placed at the beginning of a book, not at the end. 57. Mars. The Eoman god of war. Hamlet gives his father a mar- tial appearance in thus likening him to the god of war. 58. Mercury. The herald of the gods, and as such regarded as the god of eloquence. Mercury's principal articles of attire were: (1) a helmet; (2) a herald's staff; (3) golden sandals, provided with wings at the ankles, which carried the god across land and sea with the rapidity of the wind. Hamlet represents his father as having the grace- ful pose of the god Mercury. 59. Heaven-kissing. Beaching to the clouds. 69. Hey-day. Frolicsome wildness. 77. Hoodman-blind. Blindman 's buff. 97. A Vice of kings. The Vice was one of the characters in the Morality Plays. He acted the part of the buffoon, and supplied the comic element. He was so named from the vicious or mischievous qualities attributed to him. He wore a motley or patch-work dress. The fool 224 HAMLET or clown in later plays was developed from the Vice of these old Morality Plays. So ' ' Vice of kings " = a buffoon or clownish king. 98. Cutpurse. A thief. The purse was worn outside, attached to the girdle. Thieves cut the purse away from the girdles. 101. A king of shreds and patches. Eeferring to the motley dress worn by the Vice (1. 97). Enter Ghost. A stage direction. When the Ghost first appeared to Hamlet he was visible to others before he was seen by him. Now he is seen by Hamlet alone. So the ghost of Banquo appears to Macbeth only. 133. Habit. Note the differences between this appearance and the former visits of the Ghost. At the castle he appears to those on guard as well as to Hamlet; he is clad in complete armor, and stalks away. Now he appears to Hamlet alone, is clad in royal garb, and steals away. 143. Flattering unction. Soothing ointment. 171. Their scourge and minister. Their = of heaven. Scourge = the instrument to inflict the punishment decreed by heaven. Minister = the servant to obey heaven's commands. 183. Faddock. A toad. Hamlet compares the queen's telling the king what had taken place to the custom of witches consulting toads, bats, and cats. Gib. A tomcat. It is a contraction of Gilbert, and was a name often given to a cat. 187. The famous ape. An allusion to some fable well known in Shakespeare's time, but now forgotten. From the text we gather that it is a fable concerning an ape which, having seen birds fly out of a basket on a housetop, tried to imitate them and broke his neck. 188. To try conclusions. To make experiment. 197. Mandate. The commission of the king entrusted to Eosen- crantz and Guildenstern to be taken to England. 200. Petard. A kind of mortar used for blowing open gates and doors. Hamlet pictures the engineer whose duty it was to place the petard in position against the gate, as being blown up by the premature explosion of his own petard. Act IV. Scene I 1. Matter. Some important reason causing the sighs. 3. Your son. Yours (the queen's), not mine (the king's). 11. Brainish apprehension. Crazy notion. 18. Kept short. On a short tether, under strict guard. NOTES 225 Out of haunt. Apart from his companions, or away from the usual haunts of men. 42. Blank. The mark or target. The mark in the target would be painted white. Act IV. Scene II 12. Demanded of. Questioned by. 13. Sponge. Taken from a saying of the Emperor Vespasian who, when found fault with for the appointment of rapacious officers, replied that he served his turn with such officers as with sponges, which, when they had absorbed their fill, were fittest to be pressed. 26. A knavish speech, etc. This has become a proverb. 33. Hide fox, etc. This is said to have been a name for the game of "hide and seek." Act IV. Scene III 21. Politic worms. An allusion to the famous Diet of Worms, before which Martin Luther was summoned to appear, A. D. 1521. 25. Variable. Various, referring to the different courses of a dinner. 33. Progress. The technical term for a royal journey of state. 40. Lobby. A passage or waiting room. 47. At help. Ready to help, i. e. favorable. 52. I see a cherub, etc. This has been variously interpreted: (1) The modern saying, A little bird told me; (2) I have an inkling of your intentions; (3) The angels are fighting on my side. 61. That else leans on the affair. That the affair depends on. 65. Free awe. The superior might of Denmark is now freely ac- knowledged by England. 66. Coldly set. Regarded with indifference. 68. Congruing. Calling upon him to do our bidding. Act IV. Scene IV 15. The main. Either (1) the mainland of Poland, or (2) the main body of the Polish forces. 21. Sold in fee. This means an absolute sale conveying all rights in the land. 35. Large discourse. A wide range of intelligence and power of reason. 39. Bestial oblivion. Forgetfulness, worthy only of an animal. 49. Invisible event. An issue that cannot be foreseen. 63. Continent. That which holds or contains anything. 226 HAMLET Act IV. Scene V 9. Collection, etc. To gather up the disjointed remarks of Ophelia and to endeavor to guess at their meaning. 15. Ill-breeding minds. Minds ready to conceive mischief. 25. Cockle hat and staff, etc. Alluding to the dress of a pilgrim. The cockle shell was worn in the hat as an emblem of one's intention to go to the Holy Land. 38. True-love showers. Tears showered upon his grave by those who truly loved him. 40. God 'ield you. God reward you. 41. A baker's daughter. The reference is to a tradition, current in Gloucestershire, that our Savior one day entered a baker's shop and asked for bread. The mistress offered Him a loaf, but the daughter objected that it was too large. She offered Him a small one, which, however, began to swell, and became very large. At that moment, too, the daughter assumed the shape of an owl, as a punishment for her miserly conduct. 43. Conceit upon. Thought of. 48. Saint Valentine. A Eoman priest, who befriended the martyrs in the persecution under Claudius II., and in consequence was arrested, beaten with clubs, and finally beheaded, Feb. 14, 270. 58. My coach. I. e. calling for her carriage. An anachronism. 64. Single spies. Singly, one by one, as spies, not in companies. 70. Hugger-mugger. Secretly, hurriedly, and without ceremony. 81. Murdering-piece. The name given to a cannon or mortar when loaded with case shot, and which scattered bullets when fired, thus wounding many by a single discharge. 83. My Switzers. My bodyguard. An allusion to the practice of the French kings in employing Swiss soldiers as their bodyguard. An anachronism. 85. List. A barrier or boundary enclosing a space, and intended to prevent spectators encroaching on the ground railed off. 87. Riotous head. Head = an armed force. Laertes is at the head of an armed rabble. 96. Counter. A hunting term descriptive of hounds taking up a false trail, or running back upon the true one. 106. There's such divinity, etc. The King faces Laertes in a digni- fied manner, secure, as he thinks, by Hamlet's absence. He talks with calm assurance, asserting the divine rights of kings. The Queen NOTES 227 staunchly upholds her consort. She seizes Laertes to prevent his strik- ing the King, and asserts that the charge is false, for, of course, she knows Hamlet had slain Polonius. 115. Conscience and grace. Morals and religion. 117. Both the worlds. I. e. this world and the next. Laertes casts off all ties of duty in both worlds — viz., "his allegiance," and "vows" of fealty to the king in this world, "conscience and grace" in the next. 120. My will. This may mean: (1) Only by the accomplishment of my purpose, or (2) My own change of purpose, for nothing else shall stay me. 125. Sweepstake. A wager where the winner sweeps in all the money staked. 129. Life-rendering. Giving up its own life. It was an old belief that the pelican pierced its breast and fed its young on its own blood. 154. The wheel. Ophelia is uttering snatches of old ballads sung to the spinning wheel. 158ff. We may note how Ophelia suits the flowers to the several per- sons: to Laertes she gives rosemary and pansies (remembrance and thoughts) ; to the King, fennel and columbine (flattery and ingratitude) ; to the Queen, rue (sorrow) ; to Hamlet, who is not present, daisies (un- faithfulness). 161. Document. A lesson, instruction, example. 166. With a difference. An heraldic term denoting the slight change in a coat-of-arms to distinguish the different members of the same family. The phrase is intended to point out that Ophelia and the Queen have dif- ferent causes for their respective sorrows: Ophelia mourns for her dead father; the Queen will meet with sorrow in punishment for her hasty marriage. 170. Bonny sweet Robin. A well-known ballad on Eobin Hood. 197. Hatchment. An escutcheon. Knights and persons of rank were buried with great ceremony, and "the sword, the helmet, tne gauntlet, spurs, and tabard were hung over the tomb." 198. Formal ostentation. Customary ceremony. Act IV. Scene VI 11. Let to know. Informed. 27. Bore of the matter. Bore refers to some large piece of ordnance, discharging a heavy shot. Hamlet suggests that his words are too light for the occasion, like shot too small for the barrel of a large cannon. 228 HAMLET Act IV. Scene VII 7. Capital. Deserving the death penalty. 10. Unsinew'd. Without nerve or sinew, and so lacking strength, sufficient for the purpose. 15. Sphere. An allusion to the Ptolemaic system of astronomy which supposed the universe to be composed of hollow spheres, one within an- other. 20. Spring. A reference to lime springs. These springs being impregnated with lime deposit a coating on substances placed therein, and so apparently petrify or turn them into stone. 21. Gyves. Fetters for the ankles. 22. Too slightly timbered. An arrow with too slender and light a shaft, so that its flight is strongly affected by the wind. 28. Stood challenger. ' ' The allusion must be to the coronation cere- mony of the Emperor of Germany. While being crowned King of Hun- gary, on the Mount of Defiance at Presburg, he unsheathes the ancient sword of state and shaking it toward north, south, east, and west, chal- lenges the four corners of the earth to dispute his rights." — Moberly. 46. More strange. The return was sudden, and that was strange; but the strangest thing to the King's mind was that Hamlet should return at all. 50. Naked. Either (1) alone, without attendants, or' (2) having lost all his possessions. 61. Checking. A metaphor taken from falconry. The falcon was said to "check" if it left the proper game to fly after some other bird. 72. Parts. Qualities. The King means that Hamlet did not envy Laertes all his good qualities, but only his skill as a fencer. 75. Siege. Seat. Unworthiest siege means "of lowest rank," i. e. taking the lowest seat at table. 86. Incorpsed and demi-natured. Descriptive of a good horseman, who sits his horse as if he were part of him. 92. Brooch. Any conspicuous ornament. 95. Masterly report. He reported you a master of the art of fencing. 116. Plurisy. This word must not be confounded with pleurisy, an affection of the pleura. Plurisy is derived from Latin plus, more, and signifies "excess" "too much." 121. Spendthrift sigh. A sigh that wastes the vital flame. 122. That hurts by easing. The sigh relieved the mind, but accord- ing to the popular notion, injured the strength of the body. NOTES 229 126. Sanctuarize. To be a shelter or protection to a murderer. Cer- tain religious places were privileged to give protection to those who took refuge there. 143. Simples. Herbs. 150. Look through. Show itself. 153. Blast in proof. Burst in the test, as a cannon. 159. For the nonce. For the occasion. 166. Hoar leaves. The silver-gray underside of willow leaves. 172. Sliver. A branch broken off a tree. Act V. Scene I 2. Wilfully. The body of one who has committed suicide is buried without the ceremonies of the Church. 4. Crowner. Coroner, i. e. an officer under the Crown. 9. Se offendendo. The clown 's mistake for se defendendo, which is the verdict in the ease of justifiable homicide. Se offendendo means "by attacking himself," and so describes an act of suicide, i 12. Three branches. The clown defines the three parts of any deed : (1) The inception in the mind. (2) The resolution to act. (3) The actual performance. 14. Goodman delver. The first clown is the sexton proper, the second is his assistant, a mere laborer employed to dig the graves. 24. Crowner's quest. Coroner's inquest. 35. Hold up. Continue. Adam's profession. I. e. that of a gardener, and so a "delver" or digger. "When Adam delved and Eve span Who was then the gentleman?" 59. Unyoke. An expression borrowed from husbandry. When the day's work is done the team is unyoked or unharnessed. So the phrase means "then your task of guessing can be regarded as completed." 68. Yaughan. An alehouse near the Globe Theater was kept by a Jew named Johan. It is suggested that "Yaughan" is a corruption of this name. 69. In youth, etc. This verse which is inaccurately rendered is taken from "The Aged Lover Eenounceth Love," in Tottel's Miscellany, 1557. 76. Property of easiness. Long custom in burying the dead had rendered the gravedigger indifferent to the mournful task. 230 HAMLET 85. Cain's jaw-bone. An allusion to the old tradition that Cain slew his brother Abel with the jaw-bone of an ass. 87. O'er-reaches. In the sense of "goes beyond," "surpasses." Ham- let means that the humble gravedigger is now the superior of the dead politician. It may also mean "reaches over for," in order to put it back into the ground. 96. My Lady Worm's. This skull which was once my Lord such-a- one's (1. 92) is now my Lady Worm's. 10L Loggats. Diminutive of log, a small piece of wood. Loggats was a game which somewhat resembled bowls. 120. Pair of indentures. Such agreements are always drawn up and signed in duplicate, each party to the agreement retaining a copy. 152. By the card. Precisely or exactly, taking this meaning from: (1) A ship's chart, which would be accurately drawn; or (2) A card of etiquette, containing precise instructions on behavior; or (3) The actor's card on which his part was exactly written out. 180. Thirty years. This makes Hamlet thirty. But at the begin- ning of the play it is clear that Shakespeare thinks of him as much younger. Such inconsistencies in the reckoning of time are common in Shakespeare, who in such matters cares only for dramatic effect. 225. Alexander. Son of Philip, King of Macedon. His conquests over the Persians and in Asia Minor gained for him the name of Alex- ander the Great. Born B. C. 356; died B. C. 323. 250. Doubtful. I. e. no evidence to show if Ophelia's death had been accidental or that she had committed suicide. 252. Unsanctified. Unconsecrated. Alluding to the ancient practice of refusing suicides burial in consecrated ground. 256. Strewments. Strewing her grave with flowers. The bringing home. The body of Ophelia is carried to the grave (her last home), to the sad tolling of the funeral bell, as a bride is welcomed to her home by the merry chiming of the wedding bells. 276. Pelion. A lofty range of mountains in Thessaly. Near the summit was the cave of the centaur Chiron. On Pelion was felled the tim- ber, with which the ship Argo was built. 299. Esil. Variously interpreted as: 1. The name of some river, as a. The Yssel, a branch of the Ehine; b. The Weissel. c. The Nile, sug- gested by the mention of the crocodiles. 2. Eisel = Vinegar. 306. Ossa like a wart. Cause a mountain to appear no larger than a wart. Ossa, a celebrated mountain in Thessaly, was connected with Pelion on the S. E., and divided from Olympus on the N. W. by the Vale of Tempe. NOTES 231 310. Golden couplets. The dove lays but two eggs. On leaving the shell the young are covered with golden down. Disclosed. The technical term for the coming out of the young bird from the shell ; the equivalent of ' ' born. ' ' 320. Living monument. The king may be referring to an enduring monument to be placed over the grave, or he may mean that the death of Hamlet shall be metaphorically the monument. Act V. Scene II 6. Mutines in the bilboes. Mutines, mutineers. Bilboes, the name for the ship's prison, and also for the stocks of fetters used on board ship. 11. Rough-hew. I. e. as a carpenter first works a piece of timber, before finally planing and smoothing it to exact shape. 13. Scarfed. A verb formed from the noun. 36. Yeoman's service. The Yeomen (see Glossary) were the small freeholders of England. The allusion is to the part taken by English yeomen as archers and infantry in the wars of the fourteenth and fifteenth centuries. The phrase has become proverbial for "good and faithful service." 42. A comma 'tween their amities. Blending, close connection be- tween England and Denmark. The idea is connection not separation. "A comma is the note of connection and continuity of sentences; the period is the note of abruption and disjunction." — Johnson. 47. Not shriving-time allowed. I. e. their death was immediate, with no time even for confession. 53. Changeling never known. Hamlet compares the substitution of his letter for that of the King to the supposed practice of fairies, who were believed to take away very beautiful children at their birth, and to replace them with ugly ones. The child brought by the fairy was termed a changeling. 77. Image of my cause. Hamlet can sympathize with Laertes in his grief and indignation, for he knows him to be in a similar case to himself. Hamlet had lost his father, murdered; so had Laertes lost his father, Polonius. Both Hamlet and Laertes mourned for Ophelia, the one for his love, and the other for his sister. 84. Water-fly. A fly which skims up and down a stream, descriptive of, Osrie, a mere trifler or hanger on at Court. 96. Your bonnet to its right use. Put on your cap, and do not stand before me uncovered like an obsequious courtier. 232 HAMLET 114. Great showing. Fine appearance. 115. Card or calendar. Johnson points out the distinction between the card and the calendar: Card or chart, by which to direct his con- duct; calendar, by which to choose his time. 159. Hangers. The straps by which the sword is attached to the belt. 177. Twelve for nine. The terms of the wager. The King wagers that Laertes will hit Hamlet twelve times before Hamlet will hit Laertes nine times. 184. Breathing time of day. The time of day taken up in exercise. 196. Lapwing. The lapwing is said to run away before it is entirely out of its shell. The figure, as used here, is not exactly clear. It refers, per- haps, to Osric's forwardness. Hamlet terms Osric a lapwing; i. e., calls him a forward fellow. 200. Outward habit of encounter. Outside polish of manner, veneer of courtesy. 201. Yesty collection. Frothy opinions gathered from anywhere. 202. Carries them through. "Wins them the approval of. 211. Fitness speaks. Convenience summons. 216. In happy time. Just at the right time to witness our 'fencing match. 218. Gentle entertainment. Gracious treatment. 224. At the odds. I. e. of 12 to 9 (1. 177). Good fencer though Laertes be, Hamlet is confident he can meet him on the above terms. 289. An union. A very precious pearl. (See Glossary.) To swallow a pearl in a draught of wine was an extravagance not uncommon in ancient times. They change rapiers. A stage direction. This is brought about differently by various actors. (1) Mutual disarmament, each picking up the nearest rapier and thus getting his opponent's weapon. (2) Hamlet disarms Laertes and then courteously offers Laertes his own weapon. (3) Laertes rushes into close quarters and seizes Hamlet's rapier by the hilt. The proper way to meet this attack would be for Hamlet to seize the hilt of Laertes' sword, thus the exchange is made. 320. Have at you. I'll begin, I'll hit you. 353. Mutes. Silent spectators. Most of the courtiers were, of course, in ignorance of the plot against Hamlet's life. 358. The unsatisfied. I. e. those who could not understand Hamlet's action in stabbing the King. The dying Hamlet entreats Horatio to explain his action so that all may see what cause he had for the deed. 359. Roman. An allusion to the Romans of old, who preferred death to a life of disgrace, e. g., Cato. NOTES 233 362. Wounded name. Unless the truth is known my name will live forever stained with the crime of the king's assassination. 382. Cries on. Cried out. 399. Unnatural acts. The murder of Hamlet's father, the hasty mar- riage of his mother, the plots of the King against Hamlet. 400. Accidental judgments. The death of Polonius, stabbed by Hamlet in mistake for the King, the death of the Queen on drinking the poisoned cup intended for Hamlet. Casual slaughters. The deaths of Eosencrantz and Guildenstern. 401. Cunning. The death of Laertes, his own device recoiling on himself. Forced. The death of the King, well merited by his crimes. 402. Upshot. A term in archery — the last shot. The death of Ham- let was the final act in the drama of murder and death. 407. Eights of memory. Eights which the Danes must remember are well founded. Fortinbras is alluding to his claim to succeed to the throne of Denmark, now that both the King and Hamlet are dead. GRAMMATICAL NOTES On reading the works of Elizabethan authors we wonder at the many points of difference in grammar and meaning between their English and the English of today. Yet, there is really no cause for surprise. The great "renascence" had just taken place, and the ancient classics were being studied in England as they had never before been studied. Changes in structure and meaning in the language of Chaucer were demanded and introduced, but as old prejudices die hard the result for a time was chaos. Neither the devotees of the old forms nor the advocates of the new would give way, so both reigned, but neither was supreme. Language is given to interpret thought, and the result of the conflict between the old and the new was a language clear in thought but doubtful in expression. Such must be the conditions in all transitional periods. Hence, though the Elizabethan English differs in many respects from the English of today, it was and is intelligible. The change from the old styles through the Eliza- bethan English, to our present forms was slow indeed, but changes that are to endure are not wrought in a generation. In this may be found the raison d'etre of the so-called grammatical difficulties of Shakespeare. Besides, in those days printed books were less common than they are now, and even today spoken language is frequently less grammatical than that which is written. Adjectives Used as Adverbs 'Tis bitter cold (I. i. 8). Bitterly. Goes slow and stately by them (I. ii. 201). Slowly. Very like (I. ii. 235). Likely. 2Vew-hatch'd (I. iii. 65). Newly-hatched. How 'prodigal the soul lends the tongue vows (I. iii. 116). Prodigally. Grow not instant old (I. v. 76). Instantly. This is wondrous strange (I. v. 146). Wonderfully. You shall do marvellous wisely, good Eeynaldo (II. i. 3). Marvellously. I went round to work (II. ii. 140). Eoundly. You say right (II. ii. 415). Eightly. We'll have a speech straight (II. ii. 461). Straightway. I am myself indifferent honest (III. i. 121). Fairly. 234 GEAMMATICAL NOTES 235 Or come tardy off (III. ii. 28). Tardily. Excellent V faith (III. ii. 99). Excellently. He will come straight (III. iv. 1). Straightway. iVew-lighted (III. iv. 59). Newly-lighted. Speak fair, and bring the body (IV. i. 36). Fairly, openly. Follow her close (IV. v. 61). Closely. It shall as level to your judgment pierce (IV. v. 134). Directly. And do't the speedier (IV. vi. 33). The more speedily. It falls right (IV. vii. 69). Eightly. It is indifferent cold (V. ii. 101). Indifferently. Adjectives Used as Nouns A list of lawless resolutes (I. i. 98). Eesolute men. I shall in all my best obey you (I. ii. 120). Best efforts. In the dead vast and middle of the night (I. ii. 197). Vastness. In few, Ophelia (I. iii. 126). Few words. 'Twas caviare to the general (II. ii. 468). The majority. Each toy seems prologue to some great amiss (IV. v. 18). Misfortune. Adjectives Used as Verbs And 'gins to pale his uneffectual fire (I. v. 72). To make pale. All his visage wann'd (II. ii. 591). Became wan. We fat all creatures else to fat us (IV. iii. 23). Fatten. But since he is better 'd (V. ii. 280). Has improved. Nouns Used as Adjectives Maiden presence (I. iii. 121). Begion kites (II. ii. 618). Music vows (III. i. 161). Mountain snow (IV. v. 34). Coronet weeds (IV. vii. 171). Nouns Used as Adverbs We doubt it nothing (I. ii. 41). Not at all. This something settled matter (III. i. 178). Somewhat. Discomfort you, my lord, it nothing must (III. ii. 167). In no wise. Nouns Used as Verbs SharTced up a list of lawless resolutes (I. i. 98). To business with the king (I. ii. 37). 236 HAMLET Cast thy nighted colour off (I. ii. 68). The heavens shall bruit again (I. ii. 127). Eesound. Look thou character (I. iii. 59). Engrave. It doth posset and curd (I. v. 52). We do sugar o'er the devil himself (III. i. 48). It out-herods Herod (III. ii. 16). You shall nose him as you go up the stairs (IV. iii. 39). Smell. Bepast them with my blood (IV. v. 130). Feed them on. My sea-gown scarfed about me (V. ii. 13). Wrapped about me as a ecarf. Verbs Used as Nouns Without the sensible and true avouch (I. i. 57). Intransitive Verbs Used Transitively So nightly toils the subject of the land (I. i. 72). Makes the subject to toil. If with too credent ear you list his songs (I. iii. 30). Listen to. Haste me to know 't (I. v. 29). Make haste to acquaint me with it. Verbs Used as Adjectives As hush as death (II. ii. 519). Abstract Words Used in a Concrete Sense Needful in our loves (I. i. 173). On account of our love. Your better wisdoms (I. ii. 15). Judgment. You cannot speak of reason (I. ii. 44). Name a reasonable request. My necessaries are embark 'd (I. iii. 1). Needful things. Between you and your love (III. ii. 245). Lover. 'Tis meet that some more audience than a mother (III. iii. 32). Per- sons hearing. With this contagion (IV. vii. 146). Poisonous drug. Omission of the Relative That father lost (I. ii. 90). Who was. And they in France (I. iii. 73). That are. What is't, Ophelia, he hath said to you (I. iii. 88) 1 That. Your party in converse, him you would sound (II. i. 40). Whom. And all we mourn for (II. ii. 152). Whom. Those ills we have (III. i. 78). Which. GEAMMATICAL NOTES 237 To draw apart the body he hath kill 'd (IV. i. 24). Which. That we would do (IV. vii. 117). Which. We'll put on those shall praise your excellence (IV. vii. 130). Who. The fame the Frenchman gave you (IV. vii. 131). Which. There is a willow grows aslant a brook (IV. vii. 165). Which. The corse they follow (V. i. 243). Which. Omission of the Subject Sends out arrests (II. ii. 67). He. And now remains (II. ii. 100). It. But, with a crafty madness, keeps aloof (III. i. 8). He. None wed the second but who kill'd the first (III. ii. 181). He. Omission op Verb op Motion Away, I do beseech you, both away (II. ii. 171). Go. Shall we to the court (II. ii. 274). Go. He shall with speed to England (III. i. 174). Go. Shall along with you (III. iii. 4). Go. I must to England (III. iv. 193). Go. The Double Negative It is not, nor it cannot come to good (I. ii. 157). Nor no matter in the phrase (II. ii. 475). Nor 'tis not strange (III. ii. 198). Nor did you nothing hear (III. iv. 131). Not this, by no means, that I bid you do (III. iv. 177). Double Comparatives and Superlatptes Come you more nearer (II. i. 11). O most best, believe it (II. ii. 122). Show itself more richer (III. ii. 304). The worser part of it (III. iv. 155). More rawer breath (V. ii. 131). Frequent Use of the Nominative Absolute Yet now, I must confess, that duty done (I. ii. 54). i?is greatness weigh' d, his will is not his own (I. iii. 17). The friends thou hast, and their adoption tried (I. iii. 62). The great man down, you mark his favourite flies (III. ii. 202). Sup- ply being. 238 HAMLET Else no creature seeing (III. ii. 253). No leisure bated (V. ii. 23). The changeling never known (V. ii. 53). The gentleman willing (V. ii. 185). Things standing thus unknown (V. ii. 363). Eis for "Its'* Nor any unproportion 'd thought his act (I. iii. 60). Since nature cannot choose his origin (I. iv. 26). The dram of base ... to his own scandal (I. iv. 36). As level as the cannon to his blank (IV. i. 42). Acts little of his will (IV. v. 108). That, as the star moves not but in his sphere (IV. vii. 15). Than settled age his sables and his weeds (IV. vii. 79). Did Hamlet so envenom with his envy (IV. vii. 102). There is a willow . . . that shows his hoar leaves (IV. vii. 165). Singular Verb with Plural Subject For on his choice depends the safety and health of the whole state (I. iii. 20-21). His sickness, age, and impotence, was falsely borne in hand (II. ii. 66, 67). There's letters sealed (III. iv. 195). Your fat king, and your lean beggar, is but variable service (IV. iii. 24, 25). There's tricks i' the world (IV. v. 5). There is pansies, that's for thoughts, etc. (IV. v. 159). That's two of his weapons (V. ii. 155). Plural Verb with Singular Subject More than the scope Of these dilated articles allow (I. ii. 37, 38). Which now, like fruit unripe, sticks on the tree; But fall, unshaken, when they mellow be (III. ii. 188, 189). The violence of either grief or joy Their own enactures with themselves destroy (III. ii. 194, 195). Archaic Forms of the Past Participle It would be spoke to (I. i. 45). Spoken. Our state to be disjoint and out of frame (I. ii. 20). Disjointed. GRAMMATICAL NOTES 239 We have here writ (I. ii. 27). Written. See also I. ii. 221 and IV. v. 124. Who, impotent and bed-rid (I. ii. 29). Bed-ridden. But that I am forbid (I. v. 13). Forbidden. There o'erxook in's rouse (II. i. 56). Overtaken. Meantime, we thank you for your well-took labour (II. ii. 83). Well- taken. And I, of ladies most deject and wretched (III. i. 160). Dejected. For, O, for, O, the hobby-horse is forgot (III. ii. 138). Forgotten. See also III. iv. 194. That hath eat of a king (IV. iii. 29). Eaten. The doors are broke (IV. v. 97). Broken. That we can let our beard be shook with danger (IV. vii. 32). Shaken. Compound Words Elizabethan writers freely coined compound words. By their oppress 'd and fear-surprised eyes (I. ii. 202). And the swaggering up-spring reels (I. iv. 9). Most lasar-like (I. v. 56). And down-gyved to his ankle (II. i. 76). A dull and muddy -mettled rascal (II. ii. 605). But I am pig eon-liver' d (II. ii. 616). To hear a robustious periwig-pated fellow (III. ii. 10). It out-herods Herod (III. ii. 16). New-lighted on a heaven-kissing hill (III. iv. 59). And, like the kind life-rendering pelican (IV. v. 129). As he had been incorpsed and demi-natured (IV. vii. 86). As to peace-parted souls (V. i. 261). Like wonder-wounded hearers (V. i. 280). Three liberal-conceited carriages (V. ii. 171). But it is such a kind of gain-giving (V. ii. 229). Words Which Have Changed in Meaning Of unimproved metal hot and full (I. i. 96). Untutored. It shows a will most incorrect to heaven (I. ii. 95). Unsubmissive. Set your entreatments at a higher rate (I. iii. 122). Favors. With arms encumbered thus (I. v. 156). Folded. Their own enactures with themselves destroy (III. ii. 195). Resolutions. As from the body of contraction plucks (III. iv. 46). Marriage. More than their even Christian (V. i. 32). Fellow. To keep my name ungored (V. ii. 266). Unstained. 240 HAMLET Words Which Have Changed in Fokm He smote the sledded PolacJc on the ice (I. i. 63). Pole. Thereto spurr'd on by a most emulate pride (I. i. 83). Emulous. And even the like precurse of fierce events (I. i. 121). Precursor. Unto our climatures and countrymen (I. i. 125). Climates. Holding a weak supposed of our worth (I. ii. 18). Estimate. Nor windy suspiration of forced breath (I. ii. 79). Sighs. The perfume and suppliance of a minute (I. iii. 9). That which supplies. Contagious blastments are most imminent (I. iii. 42). Blights. And 'gins to pale his uneffeetual fire (I. v. 72). Ineffectual. What DansTcers are in Paris (II. i. 7). Danes. Baked and impasted with the parching streets (II. ii. 492). Made into a paste. The cease of majesty (III. iii. 15). Decease. Each small annexment (III. iii. 21). What is annexed. That sense is apoplex'd (III. iv. 73). Stricken with apoplexy. If thou canst mutine in a matron's bones (III. iv. 83). Cause a mutiny. And hit the woundless air (IV. i. 44). Incapable of being wounded. No place, indeed, should murder sanctuarise (IV. vii. 126). Be a sane- tuary to. Why, even in that was heaven ordinant (V. ii. 48). Ordaining. And will no reconcilement (V. ii. 263). Eeconciliation. VERSIFICATION The ordinary line of Blank Verse or Iambic Pentameter consists of five feet of two syllables, each with the accent on the second syllable. [A foot with the accent on the first syllable is called a Trochee.'] "Was false' |ly borne' | in hand',| — sends out'] arrest's| II. ii. 67. On Fort'|inbras';| which he',| in brief/ 1 obeys' || II. ii. 68. A Trochee often occurs, especially as the first foot of a line. "Looks' it | not like'| the king'?! mark it',] Horat'io|| I. i. 43. "Cost'ly | thy hab'|it as'| thy purse'| can buy'||" I. iii. 70. "Mar'ry,| I'll teach' | you: think' | yourself | a baby'||" I. iii. 105. Examples of a Trochee not as the first foot of a line. " Affect' |ion! poo'h! | you speak' | like' a | green girl' j | " I. iii. 101. "A broth'|er's mur'|der'! | Pray', can | I not'||" III. iii. 39. An extra syllable is often added before a pause, especially at the end of a line. "But not' | expressed' | in fan'|cy; rich', | not gaudi/'||" I. iii. 71. "And that' | in way' | of caut'|ion — I'| must tell' you\\" I. iii. 95. "You' do | not und'|ersta'nd | yourself | so clearly' \\" I. iii. 96. Example of extra syllables in the middle of a line. "Had he' | been vanquisher; j as, by'l the same'| covenant' ||" L i. 93. Accented monosyllables and prepositions. Sometimes an unemphatic monosyllable is allowed to stand in an emphatic place, and to receive an accent. "So please'| you, some'|thing touch'|ing the'\ Lord Ham'let||" I. iii. 89. Two extra syllables are sometimes allowed, if unemphatic, before a pause, especially at the end of a line. "My lord,' | I came' | to see' | your fa'|ther's fu'neral\\" I. ii. 175. "And meant' | to wreck' | thee; but',j beshrew'| my ^eaYousy || " II. i. 109. 241 242 HAMLET Prefixes are dropped in the following words: 'Count for ' ' account. ' ' 'Eaviour for ' ' behaviour. ' ' 'Gain- giving for ' ' against giving. ' ' 'Noyance for ' ' annoyance. ' ' 'Gainst for ' ' against. ' ' 'Tend for ' ' attend. ' ' B frequently softens or destroys a following vowel. The vowel being nearly lost in the burr which follows the r. "And then', | they say',| no spirit' | dares stir'[ abroad'|| " I. i. 161. Ham. Perchance', I 'twill walk' | again. | Hor. I warrant' | it will'|| I. ii. 242. "Be thou'| a spirit' | of health', | or gob'|lin dam'n'd|| " I. iv. 40. Whether and ever, and similar words pronounced as one syllable. "Whether love'| lead for'|tune, or'| else for'|tune love'||" III. ii. 201. "But never 7 1 the offence'. | To bear'| all smooth' | and even'|| " IV. iii. 7. ' ' To fust' | in us' | unused'. | Now whether' | it be'| | » ' IV. iv. 38. I in the middle of a trisyllable, if unaccented, is frequently dropped. "Himself'| the prim'|rose path' | of dall'|(i)ance tre'ads||" I. iii. 50. "Unsift'|ed in'| such pe'r(i)l|ous cir'|eumstance'|j" I. iii. 102. An unaccented syllable of a polysyllable may sometimes be softened and almost ignored. "A lit'|tle ere'| the migh't|iest Jul'|ius fell'||" I. i. 114. "The graves'| stood ten'|ant|Zess, and'|the sheet'|ed dead'||" I. i. 115. "As fits' | a king's' | remem'|brance. Both'| your ma,yesties\\ " II. ii. 26. "To give'|the assay' | of arms' | against' | your maj'esty||" II. ii. 71. In pronunciation polysyllabic names often receive but one accent at the end of the line. "Thou art' | a schol'| ar; spea'k | to it',| Hora'tio\\" I. i. 42. "I pray' | thee, stay' | with us';|go not' | to Wit'tenberg\\ " I. ii. 119. Or we may scan — "I pray thee, (prithee) stay' | with us';|go not' | to Witt'|enber'g|| " "Than may' | be giv'|en you'.| In few',| Oph'elia\\" I. iii. 126. "When thou'| liest howl'|ing. What'| the fair' | Oph'elia\\" V. i. 265. Examples in the middle of a line. "How now 7 , | Hora'tio!\ you trem'|ble, and'| look pale'j | " Li. 53. "Thrift, thrift', | Rora'tio! \ the fun'|eral'| baked-meats'||" I. ii. 179. VEBSIFICATION 243 Words in which a light vowel is preceded by a heavy vowel or diphthong are frequently contracted. "We do' | it wrong',| being so'| majes'|ic'al|| ,, I. i. 143. "Of en'|trance to'| a quarr'|el; but',| being in'||" I. iii. 66. "That you'', | at such'| times seeing' | me, nev'|er shall' || " I. v. 155. "Will' so | bestow' | ourselves', | that, seeing', \ unseen' || " III. i. 33. Ed following d or t is often not pronounced, even if written. ' "I had'| not quot'ed him:| I fear'd'| he did'| but trifle'||" II. i. 108. Er and or final pronounced with a kind of "burr," giving the effect of an additional syllable. "Lends' the | tongue vows' :| these blaz'|es, daugh'|ter'j| " T. iii. 117. "To speak'| of hor'|rors', — | he eomes'| before' me|| " II. i. 80. "A broth'|er's mur|der!| Pray', can | I not'||" III. iii. 39. The terminative ion, at the end of a line, is frequently pronounced as two syllables. The i is also sometimes pronounced in such words as soldier, marriage, conscience, etc.; and the e in surgeon, vengeance, etc. "As you'| are friends',| seholars',| and sol'|diers'|| " I. v. 123. "Do not'| forget':| this vis'|ita't|ion'|| " III. iv. 108. "With sor'e | distract' | ion'. | What I'j have done'?j| " V. ii. 246. Fear, dear, year, fire, and other monosyllables ending in r or re, pre- ceded by a long vowel or diphthong, are frequently pronounced as dissyl- ables. " Hor. Where', | my lord' f | Ham. In' my | mind's' eye,| Hora'tio|| " I. ii. 184. "You must'| not take'| for fi'|re. From'| this time'|| " I. iii. 120. "Fear'| me not': — | withdraw',| I hear'| him coming'||" III. iv. 7. Monosyllables pronounced as dissyllables. 1. Exclamations 2. Those emphasized by position or antithesis 3. Those containing long vowels or diphthongs 4. Those containing a vowel followed by r. "Where'fore | should you'| do this' 9 1 Ay', | my lord'||" II. i. 34. "Thence' to | a watch' ;| thence' | into'| a weak'ness||" II. ii. 149. "The devil' | himself. | O', 'tis | too tr'uelj how sm'art||" III. i. 49. 244 HAMLET "One wor'|d more',| good lady'.| What shall' 1 1 do'?||" III. iv. 176. "I'll be'| with you straight'.| Go'| a lit'|tle befo're||" IV. iv. 30. "To hide' | the slain' #| 0',| from this'| time for'th||" IV. iv. 64. "Will you' | be ruled' | by me'?| Ay' ; | my lo'rd| | " IV. vii. 58. Accent: 1. Words in which the accent is nearer the end than with us. Aspect'. "Tears' in | his eyes',| distract'|ion in's'| aspect'|| " II. ii. 592. Canon'ised. "Why thy' | canon' |ized bones', | hearsed' | in death'||" I. iv. 47. Chara'cter. "Look' thou | char act' |er. Give' | thy though'ts | no tong'ue|| " I. iii. 59. Compact' (noun). "Did slay' | this Fort'inbras ; | who, by'| a seal"d| compact' 1 1 " Li. 86. Comrade'. ' ' Of each'| new-hatch 'd',| unfledged'| comrade'. | Beware'| | ' ' I. iii. 65. Contra' ry. ' ' Our wills' | and fates' j do so'| contra' |ry run'| | ' ' III. ii. 209. Converse'. Your par'|ty in' | converse', | him you' | would sound'||" II. i. 40. Purpo'rt. "And with' | a look' | so pit'|eous in' | purport' 1 1 " II. i. 78. Becords' (noun). "I'll wipe' | away' | all triv'|ial fond'| records'|| " I. v. 81. Eeve'nue. "That no'| reve'|nue hast', | but thy' | good spirits' j | ' ' III. ii. 64. 2. Words in which the accent is nearer the beginning than with us. Ab'surd. No, let' | the cand'|ied tongue' | lick ab'|surd pomp||" III. ii. 66. Co'mplete. "That thou', | dead corse', | again',] in comp'|lete steel'||" I. iv. 52. En'giner. "For 'tis | the sport',| to have'| the en'giner||" III. iv. 199. So Abbott, but it is better to scan "enginer" with two accents. "For 'tis | the sport'| to have'| the en'|giner'||" Impor'tuned. "My lord', | he hath' | import' |uned me' | with love'||" I. iii. 110. Ob'scure. "His means' | of death', | his ob'|scure fun'|eral'|| " IV. v. 196. Perse 'ver. "To do'| obse'|quious sorrow' :| but to'| perse'ver||" I. ii. 92. VEESIFICATION 245 Pi' oner. "A worth' |y pi'oner — | Once more'| remove', | good friends' || " I. v. 145. Se'cure. "Up on'| my se'|cure hour' | thy un'|cle stole'||" I. v. 45. A Proper Alexandrine (i. e. a line with six accents) is rarely found in Shakespeare. An example of Alexandrine. "And now' | by winds' | and waves' | my life'|less limbs' | are tossed'||" — Deyden. Apparent Alexandrines. "Had he' | been van'quisher ; | as, by' | the same'| covenant' || " I. i. 93. "Hyper' | ion to'| a sa'tyr:|so lov'|ing to'| my mo'ther||" I. ii. 140. Hok. ' ' Hail' to | your lord' ship ! | Ham. I am (I'm) glad' j to see' | you well'jj" I. ii. 159. "Unto that'| element': | but long'| it could'| not be'||" IV. vii. 179. ' ' Unto that element ' ' is contracted into ' ' Unt ' that, " "el 'ment. ' ' "I'll be'| your foil',] La'ertes: in | mine ig'|norance'|| " V. ii. 271. Many apparent Alexandrines are Trimeter Couplets, or two verses of three accents each. "Whereof | he is' | the head' : 1 1 then', if | he says' | he loves' you||" I. iii. 24. "To what' | I shall' | unfold' || Speak'; I | am bound' | to hear'||" I. v. 6. "God will'|ing, shall' | not lack'.j | Let us'| go in'| toge'ther|| " I. v. 169. "Contag'|ion to'| this world': || now could' | I drink' | hot blood'||" III. ii. 403. "Ov'er | the nast'|y sty', — O, speak' | to me'| no more'||" III. iv. 93. "To whom' | do you'| speak this'?|| Do you' | see no' | thing there'||" III. iv. 129. "Nor did' | you no' | thing hear"?| No, no'|thing but'| ourselves'. 1 1 " III. iv. 131. "Of your' | dear fa'|ther's death', || is't writ'| in your'| revenge'||" IV. v. 124. Amphibious section. When a verse consists of two parts uttered by two speakers, the latter part of the first verse is frequently the former part of the following verse, being, as it were, amphibious. Ham. You'll' I reveal' it.|| Hob. Not l',\ my lord',\ by heaven' !\ 246 HAMLET Mar. Nor I', I my Lord' 1 1 I. v. 101. Queen. Did he'\ receive' \ you well'$\\ Eos. Most like' | a gent'leman'|| " III. i. 10-11. Sometimes a section will, on the one side, form part of a regular line, and on the other, part of a Trimeter Couplet. Hok. Of mine' | own eyes'. || Mar. Is it'\ not UTce'\ the King'?\\ Hor. As thou' | art to'| thyself 1 1 " I. i. 58-59. Oph. In hon'|oura'|ble fas'hion|| Pol. Ay, I fash'ion | you' may | call' it; | go' to, | go' to| | " I. iii. 111-12. Mar. No', it | is struck'. | Hor. Indeed' ?\ I heard' \ it «o*':||it then' | draws near' | the sea'- son]| I. iv. 4-5. In the second line we may take indeed as a detached interjection as re- gards that line; i. e. the second portion of the section. Lines of four accents. 1 ' My father' !— | methinks'| I see'| my father'| | " I. ii. 183. "As he' | would draw' it.| Long stay'd | he so'|| " II. i. 87. "Must give' | us pause' :| there's' the | respect' ||" III. i. 65. There are many more examples of this kind. Lines are often "broken up between two speakers. Mar. It' is | offend' |ed. Ber. See', I it stalks' | away'|| I. i. 50. Ghost. Mark' me.| Ham. I will'. | Ghost. My hour'| is al'|most come'|| I. v. 2. Interruptions are sometimes not allowed to interfere with the complete- ness of the verse. Pol. Pray' you,| be round' | with him'.| Ham. [Within.} Mother, mother, mother! Queen. I'll war'|rant you'|| III. iv. 5-6. Scan the following lines thus: ' ' I '11' | speak to it',| though hell'| itself | should gape'| | ' ' I. ii. 244. "Let' it | be ten' | able in'| your si'|lenee still' j j ' ' I. ii. 247. "The sa'|fety'| and health'j of this' | whole state'|| " I. iii. 21. VEKSIFICATION 247 Scan safety as a trisyllable. The Folio reads sanctity, so sanity has been suggested as an emendation for safety. "Bear 't', that | the oppos'|ed may'| beware'| of thee'||" I. iii. 67. "Have' of | your aud'|ience been' | most free' | and boun'teous|| " I. iii. 93. "Which' are | not sterling'. | Ten'der | yourself | more dearly'||" I. iii. 107. "Why thy' | canon' |ized bones',] hearsed' | in death'||" I. iv. 47. "I had'| not quoted him':| I fear'd'| he did'j but trifle'||" II. i. 108. "And thus' | o'er-siz'|ed with'| coag'|ulate gore'|| " II. ii. 495. "What's Hec'|uba'| to him',| or he'| to Hec'uba|| " II. ii. 596. "But never' | the offence'. | To bear'| all smooth' | and even'|| " IV. iii. 7. But never = But ne 'er ; the offence = Th ' offence. ' ' Next', your | son gone' ; | and he' | most vi' | ( o ) lent author 1 1 " IV. v. 66. The following couplet is scanned as eight and six. "Why, let' | the strick'|en deer'| go weep',] The hart', | ungall'|ed play';| III. ii. 269-270 ff. Scan Ophelia's song thus: "And will' | he not come'| again' ?| And will' | he not come' | again' 1 1 No, no' | he is dead':| Go to' | thy death -bed': | He never' | will come'| again'. || " "His beard' | was as white' | as snow',[ All flax' | en was' | his poll' : j He is gone', | he is gone',| And we cast'| away'| moan';| God ha' mer'|cy on' | his soul'!||" IV. v. 173-182. Bhytne. ' ' Rhyme was often used as an effective termination at the end of a scene. When scenery was not changed, or the arrangements were so defective that the change was not easily perceptible, it was perhaps addi- tionally desirable to mark a scene that was finished. ' ' ' ' Ehyme was also sometimes used in the same conventional way to mark an aside, which otherwise the audience might have great difficulty in know- ing to be an aside." — Abbott. Examples of rhyme at the end of a scene are : I. ii., II. i., II. ii., III. i., HI. ii., III. iii., IV. i., IV. iii., IV. iv., V. i., V. ii. 248 HAMLET Prose. Prose is not only used in comic scenes; it is adopted for letters, M. of V. IV. i. 147-63, and on other occasions when it is desirable to lower the dramatic pitch : for instance, in the more colloquial parts of the household scene between Volumnia and Virgilia, Coriol, I. iii., where the scene begins with prose, then passes into verse, and returns finally to prose. It is also used to express frenzy, Othello, IV. i. 34-44; and madness, King Lear, IV. vi. 130, and the higher flights of the imagination. Examples of prose in Hamlet: II. ii. 169-449. Madness and colloquial. II. ii. 499, 500. Colloquial. II. ii. 531-534. Colloquial. II. ii. 552-585. Colloquial. III. ii. 100-154. Hamlet simulates madness when in conversation with the king, the queen, and Ophelia. III. ii. 1-51. Colloquial. Hamlet's conversation with the players. III. ii. 98-154, 182, 222, 227-268. Interruptions in the play scene; the prose marks the conversation of the audience. III. ii. 273-293. Colloquial. Hamlet conversing with Horatio. III. ii. 294-400. On the entrance of Eosenerantz and Guildenstern Ham- let simulates madness. III. ii. 401-412. Now that Hamlet is alone he speaks in verse. IV. iii. 43-57. Hamlet is simulating madness. IV. v. 21-60. Ophelia, really mad, speaks in prose. IV. v. 153-184. Ophelia dressed with straws and flowers speaks in prose. Her madness becomes apparent to Laertes. IV. vi. 6-34. Colloquial between Horatio and the sailors. The letter is also in prose. IV. vii. 43-47. A letter. V. i. 1-240. Partly comedy, partly colloquial between the gravediggers and Hamlet. V. ii. 81-191. The conversation with Osric. Colloquial. QUESTIONS FOR REVIEW INTRODUCTION 1. Write a brief biography of Shakespeare — not more than ten or fifteen lines. 2. Who was Ann Hathaway? 3. During the reigns of what British monarchs did Shakespeare flourish? 4. What was Shakespeare's last place of residence? 5. Quote the lines inscribed on Shakespeare's tomb. 6. Briefly discuss Shakespeare's religion. 7. Who was Archdeacon Davies? 8. Briefly discuss Shakespeare's learning. 9. Write a short sketch of the drama. 10. Briefly describe the presentation of the drama in Shakespeare's time. II 1. What was the Stationers' Company? 2. Where and under what name did Shakespeare's Hamlet first appear, and what is the generally accepted opinion regarding the genuineness of this edition? 3. How does the title of the 1603 edition differ from that of the 1604 edition? 4. How many Quarto and how many Polio editions of Shakespeare's works were published? 5. How does the present edition of Hamlet differ from its original form in the Folio and in the Quarto? 6. Briefly give the sources of the play Hamlet. 7. Show the points of resemblance between Hamlet and the Legend of Amleth. 8. Synopsize Arnold's remarks on Hamlet. Ill 1. Briefly sketch the character of Claudius. 2. How does he appear as a King? 3. Write eight or ten lines descriptive of the Queen. 249 250 HAMLET 4. How. does the Queen act towards Ophelia? 5. Who was Mrs. Jameson? 6. The Queen says of Hamlet "he is fat, and scant of breath ' ' : Discuss this statement. 7. Who was Goethe? 8. What does Dowden say regarding the sincerity of Hamlet? 9. Quote Gervinus on Hamlet's literary tastes. 10. Discuss Hamlet's melancholy and irresolution. TV 1. Briefly sketch the character of Polonius. 2. State Hazlitt's opinion of him. 3. Who was Hazlitt? 4. Give the substance of Ophelia's reply to Laertes' fraternal advice. 5. Where was Laertes educated? 6. Synopsize Dowden 's estimate of Laertes. 7. Draw a brief contrast between the characters of Laertes and of Hamlet. 8. Who was Ulrici? 1. Amplify the phrase "Unsifted in such perilous circumstance." 2. Why does Hamlet advise Ophelia to go to a nunnery? 3. What is the only fault in Ophelia's character? 4. How does Maeterlinck speak of Goethe's Margaret and of Shakes- peare's Ophelia? 5. Tell what you know of Maeterlinck. VI 1. Write a brief sketch of Horatio. 2. Give the substance of what Eichardson says of Horatio. 3. Who was Eichardson? 4. Who was Fortinbras? 5. Of what was Osric a type? 6. Who were Eosencrantz and Guildenstern? 7. How does Hamlet justify his conduct towards Eosencrantz and Guilden- stern? 8. Tell what you know of the Gravediggers. 9. Give the substance of Eichardson 's reference to the Ghost. 10. Who was Charles Lamb? QUESTIONS FOE REVIEW 251 VII (Acts I and H) Write notes on: — (a) University of Wittenberg. (f) Nemean lion. (b) Hyperion. (g) Lethe. (c) Niobe. (k) Hebenon. (d) Hercules. (i) Arras. (e) Sterling. VIII (Act III) (3) Seneca. Write notes on: — (a) Termagant. (f) Phoebus. (b) Herod. (g) Hecate. (c) Vulcan. (h) Damon. (d) The Capitol. (i) Soul of Nero. (e) Brutus.